In His Steps
by Charles M.
Sheldon
(1857-1946)
Congregational minister
IMPORTANT!
WStS
Note: To avoid broken links,
due to file length, please wait for the page to
load completely
before selecting a link.
Because this page is self-contained,
you may go off line after loading.
Thanks.
CHAPTER QUICK JUMP
1
2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
10
11
12
13
14
15
16
17
18
19
20
21
22
23
24
25
26
27
28
29
30
31
In His Steps is in the public domain.
Author's Forward
The story "In His Steps" was written in 1896, and it was read a
chapter at a time to my young people, Sunday evenings in the Central
Congregational Church, Topeka, Kansas. While it was being read it was being
published in the Chicago Advance, a religious weekly, as a serial. The publisher
did not know the conditions of the copyright law, and he filed only one copy of
the advance each week with the department, instead of two, which the law
required. On that account the copyright was defective, and the story was thrown
into the "public domain" when the Advance Company put it out in a ten
cent paper edition. Owing to the fact that no one had any legal ownership in the
book, sixteen different publishers in America and fifty in Europe and Australia
put out the book in various editions from an English penny to eight shillings.
Mr. Bowden, the London publisher, sold over 3,000,000 copies of the penny
edition on the streets of London. The book has been translated into twenty-one
languages, including a Russian publication which was banned by the Soviet. A
Turkish Translation in Arabic is permitted circulation by the government and is
being read all over Turkey.
The Story has been made into the drama form and is being used by groups of young
church people and by college students. And while conditions have changed in the
years since the story was written, the principle of human conduct remains the
same. I do not need to say that I am very thankful that owing to the defective
copyright the book has had a larger reading on account of the great number of
publishers. I find readers in every part of the world where I go. And I am
informed by the Publishers' Weekly that the book has had more circulation than
any other book except the Bible. If that is true, no one is more grateful than I
am, as it confirms the faith I have always held that no subject is more
interesting and vital to the human race than religion.
May I be allowed to add a word of appreciation for the courtesy of the
publishers of this authorized edition who through these years recognized the
moral rights of the author and have kindly permitted him a share in the
financial sales of the book. I hope for this edition a hearty and kindly welcome
from the readers, old and young, who believe that in the end of human history
Jesus will be the standard of human conduct for the entire human race.
Charles M. Sheldon
Topeka, Kansas, 1935
Chapter One
"For hereunto were ye called; because Christ also suffered for you, leaving
you an example, that ye should follow in his steps."
It was Friday morning and the Rev. Henry Maxwell was trying to finish his Sunday
morning sermon. He had been interrupted several times and was growing nervous as
the morning wore away, and the sermon grew very slowly toward a satisfactory
finish.
"Mary," he called to his wife, as he went upstairs after the last
interruption, "if any one comes after this, I wish you would say I am very
busy and cannot come down unless it is something very important."
"Yes, Henry." But I am going over to visit the kindergarten and you
will have the house all to yourself."
The minister went up into his study and shut the door. In a few minutes he heard
his wife go out, and then everything was quiet. He settled himself at his desk
with a sigh of relief and began to write. His text was from 1_Peter 2:21:
"For hereunto were ye called; because Christ also suffered for you, leaving
you an example that ye should follow his steps."
He had emphasized in the first part of the sermon the Atonement as a personal
sacrifice, calling attention to the fact of Jesus' suffering in various ways, in
His life as well as in His death. He had then gone on to emphasize the Atonement
from the side of example, giving illustrations from the life and teachings of
Jesus to show how faith in the Christ helped to save men because of the pattern
or character He displayed for their imitation. He was now on the third and last
point, the necessity of following Jesus in His sacrifice and example.
He had put down "Three Steps. What are they?" and was about to
enumerate them in logical order when the bell rang sharply. It was one of those
clock-work bells, and always went off as a clock might go if it tried to strike
twelve all at once.
Henry Maxwell sat at his desk and frowned a little. He made no movement to
answer the bell. Very soon it rang again; then he rose and walked over to one of
his windows which commanded the view of the front door. A man was standing on
the steps. He was a young man, very shabbily dressed.
"Looks like a tramp," said the minister. "I suppose I'll have to
go down and --"
He did not finish his sentence but he went downstairs and opened the front door.
There was a moment's pause as the two men stood facing each other, then the
shabby-looking young man said:
"I'm out of a job, sir, and thought maybe you might put me in the way of
getting something."
"I don't know of anything. Jobs are scarce--" replied the minister,
beginning to shut the door slowly.
"I didn't know but you might perhaps be able to give me a line to the city
railway or the superintendent of the shops, or something," continued the
young man, shifting his faded hat from one hand to the other nervously.
"It would be of no use. You will have to excuse me. I am very busy this
morning. I hope you will find something. Sorry I can't give you something to do
here. But I keep only a horse and a cow and do the work myself."
The Rev. Henry Maxwell closed the door and heard the man walk down the steps. As
he went up into his study he saw from his hall window that the man was going
slowly down the street, still holding his hat between his hands. There was
something in the figure so dejected, homeless and forsaken that the minister
hesitated a moment as he stood looking at it. Then he turned to his desk and
with a sigh began the writing where he had left off. He had no more
interruptions, and when his wife came in two hours later the sermon was
finished, the loose leaves gathered up and neatly tied together, and laid on his
Bible all ready for the Sunday morning service.
"A queer thing happened at the kindergarten this morning, Henry," said
his wife while they were eating dinner. "You know I went over with Mrs,
Brown to visit the school, and just after the games, while the children were at
the tables, the door opened and a young man came in holding a dirty hat in both
hands. He sat down near the door and never said a word; only looked at the
children. He was evidently a tramp, and Miss Wren and her assistant Miss Kyle
were a little frightened at first, but he sat there very quietly and after a few
minutes he went out."
"Perhaps he was tired and wanted to rest somewhere. The same man called
here, I think. Did you say he looked like a tramp?"
"Yes, very dusty, shabby and generally tramp-like. Not more than thirty or
thirty-three years old, I should say."
"The same man," said the Rev. Henry Maxwell thoughtfully.
"Did you finish your sermon, Henry?" his wife asked after a pause.
"Yes, all done. It has been a very busy week with me. The two sermons have
cost me a good deal of labor."
"They will be appreciated by a large audience, Sunday, I hope,"
replied his wife smiling. "What are you going to preach about in the
morning?"
"Following Christ. I take up the Atonement under the head of sacrifice and
example, and then show the steps needed to follow His sacrifice and
example."
"I am sure it is a good sermon. I hope it won't rain Sunday. We have had so
many stormy Sundays lately."
"Yes, the audiences have been quite small for some time. People will not
come out to church in a storm." The Rev. Henry Maxwell sighed as he said
it. He was thinking of the careful, laborious effort he had made in preparing
sermons for large audiences that failed to appear.
But Sunday morning dawned on the town of Raymond one of the perfect days that
sometimes come after long periods of wind and mud and rain. The air was clear
and bracing, the sky was free from all threatening signs, and every one in Mr.
Maxwell's parish prepared to go to church. When the service opened at eleven
o'clock the large building was filled with an audience of the best- dressed,
most comfortable looking people of Raymond.
The First Church of Raymond believed in having the best music that money could
buy, and its quartet choir this morning was a source of great pleasure to the
congregation. The anthem was inspiring. All the music was in keeping with the
subject of the sermon. And the anthem was an elaborate adaptation to the most
modern music of the hymn,
"Jesus, I my cross have taken,
All to leave and follow Thee."
Just before the sermon, the soprano sang a solo, the well-known hymn,
"Where He leads me I will follow,
I'll go with Him, with Him, all the way."
Rachel Winslow looked very beautiful that morning as she stood up behind the
screen of carved oak which was significantly marked with the emblems of the
cross and the crown. Her voice was even more beautiful than her face, and that
meant a great deal. There was a general rustle of expectation over the audience
as she rose. Mr. Maxwell settled himself contentedly behind the pulpit. Rachel
Winslow's singing always helped him. He generally arranged for a song before the
sermon. It made possible a certain inspiration of feeling that made his delivery
more impressive.
People said to themselves they had never heard such singing even in the First
Church. It is certain that if it had not been a church service, her solo would
have been vigorously applauded. It even seemed to the minister when she sat down
that something like an attempted clapping of hands or a striking of feet on the
floor swept through the church. He was startled by it. As he rose, however, and
laid his sermon on the Bible, he said to himself he had been deceived. Of course
it could not occur. In a few moments he was absorbed in his sermon and
everything else was forgotten in the pleasure of his delivery.
No one had ever accused Henry Maxwell of being a dull preacher. On the contrary,
he had often been charged with being sensational; not in what he had said so
much as in his way of saying it. But the First Church people liked that. It gave
their preacher and their parish a pleasant distinction that was agreeable.
It was also true that the pastor of the First Church loved to preach. He seldom
exchanged. He was eager to be in his own pulpit when Sunday came. There was an
exhilarating half hour for him as he faced a church full of people and know that
he had a hearing. He was peculiarly sensitive to variations in the attendance.
He never preached well before a small audience. The weather also affected him
decidedly. He was at his best before just such an audience as faced him now, on
just such a morning. He felt a glow of satisfaction as he went on. The church
was the first in the city. It had the best choir. It had a membership composed
of the leading people, representatives of the wealth, society and intelligence
of Raymond. He was going abroad on a three months vacation in the summer, and
the circumstances of his pastorate, his influence and his position as pastor of
the First Church in the city --
It is not certain that the Rev. Henry Maxwell knew just how he could carry on
that thought in connection with his sermon, but as he drew near the end of it he
knew that he had at some point in his delivery had all those feelings. They had
entered into the very substance of his thought; it might have been all in a few
seconds of time, but he had been conscious of defining his position and his
emotions as well as if he had held a soliloquy, and his delivery partook of the
thrill of deep personal satisfaction.
The sermon was interesting. It was full of striking sentences. They would have
commanded attention printed. Spoken with the passion of a dramatic utterance
that had the good taste never to offend with a suspicion of ranting or
declamation, they were very effective. If the Rev. Henry Maxwell that morning
felt satisfied with the conditions of his pastorate, the First Church also had a
similar feeling as it congratulated itself on the presence in the pulpit of this
scholarly, refined, somewhat striking face and figure, preaching with such
animation and freedom from all vulgar, noisy or disagreeable mannerism.
Suddenly, into the midst of this perfect accord and concord between preacher and
audience, there came a very remarkable interruption. It would be difficult to
indicate the extent of the shock which this interruption measured. It was so
unexpected, so entirely contrary to any thought of any person present that it
offered no room for argument or, for the time being, of resistance.
The sermon had come to a close. Mr. Maxwell had just turned the half of the big
Bible over upon his manuscript and was about to sit down as the quartet prepared
to arise to sing the closing selection,
"All for Jesus, all for Jesus,
All my being's ransomed powers,..."
when the entire congregation was startled by the sound of a man's voice. It came
from the rear of the church, from one of the seats under the gallery. The next
moment the figure of a man came out of the shadow there and walked down the
middle aisle. Before the startled congregation fairly realized what was going on
the man had reached the open space in front of the pulpit and had turned about
facing the people.
"I've been wondering since I came in here" -- they were the words he
used under the gallery, and he repeated them-- "if it would be just the
thing to say a word at the close of the service. I'm not drunk and I'm not
crazy, and I am perfectly harmless, but if I die, as there is every likelihood I
shall in a few days, I want the satisfaction of thinking that I said my say in a
place like this, and before this sort of a crowd."
Mr. Maxwell had not taken his seat, and he now remained standing, leaning on his
pulpit, looking down at the stranger. It was the man who had come to his house
the Friday before, the same dusty, worn, shabby-looking young man. He held his
faded hat in his two hands. It seemed to be a favorite gesture. He had not been
shaved and his hair was rough and tangled. It is doubtful if any one like this
had ever confronted the First Church within the sanctuary. It was tolerably
familiar with this sort of humanity out on the street, around the railroad
shops, wandering up and down the avenue, but it had never dreamed of such an
incident as this so near.
There was nothing offensive in the man's manner or tone. He was not excited and
he spoke in a low but distinct voice. Mr. Maxwell was conscious, even as he
stood there smitten into dumb astonishment at the event, that somehow the man's
action reminded him of a person he had once seen walking and talking in his
sleep.
No one in the house made any motion to stop the stranger or in any way interrupt
him. Perhaps the first shock of his sudden appearance deepened into a genuine
perplexity concerning what was best to do. However that may be, he went on as if
he had no thought of interruption and no thought of the unusual element which he
had introduced into the decorum of the First Church service. And all the while
he was speaking, the minister leaded over the pulpit, his face growing more
white and sad every moment. But he made no movement to stop him, and the people
sat smitten into breathless silence. One other face, that of Rachel Winslow from
the choir, stared white and intent down at the shabby figure with the faded hat.
Her face was striking at any time. Under the pressure of the present unheard-of
incident it was as personally distinct as if it had been framed in fire.
"I'm not an ordinary tramp, though I don't know of any teaching of Jesus
that makes one kind of a tramp less worth saving than another. Do you?" He
put the question as naturally as if the whole congregation had been a small
Bible class. He paused just a moment and coughed painfully. Then he went on.
"I lost my job ten months ago. I am a printer by trade. The new linotype
machines are beautiful specimens of invention, but I know six men who have
killed themselves inside of the year just on account of those machines. Of
course I don't blame the newspapers for getting the machines. Meanwhile, what
can a man do? I know I never learned but the one trade, and that's all I can do.
I've tramped all over the country trying to find something. There are a good
many others like me. I'm not complaining, am I? Just stating facts. But I was
wondering as I sat there under the gallery, if what you call following Jesus is
the same thing as what He taught. What did He mean when He said: 'Follow Me!'?
The minister said," -- here he turned about and looked up at the pulpit --
"that it is necessary for the disciple of Jesus to follow His steps, and he
said the steps are 'obedience, faith, love and imitation.' But I did not hear
him tell you just what he meant that to mean, especially the last step. What do
you Christians mean by following the steps of Jesus?
"I've tramped through this city for three days trying to find a job; and in
all that time I've not had a word of sympathy or comfort except from your
minister here, who said he was sorry for me and hoped I would find a job
somewhere. I suppose it is because you get so imposed on by the professional
tramp that you have lost your interest in any other sort. I'm not blaming
anybody, am I? Just stating facts. Of course, I understand you can't all go out
of your way to hunt up jobs for other people like me. I'm not asking you to; but
what I feel puzzled about is, what is meant by following Jesus. What do you mean
when you sing 'I'll go with Him, with Him, all the way?' Do you mean that you
are suffering and denying yourselves and trying to save lost, suffering humanity
just as I understand Jesus did? What do you mean by it? I see the ragged edge of
things a good deal. I understand there are more than five hundred men in this
city in my case. Most of them have families. My wife died four months ago. I'm
glad she is out of trouble. My little girl is staying with a printer's family
until I find a job. Somehow I get puzzled when I see so many Christians living
in luxury and singing 'Jesus, I my cross have taken, all to leave and follow
Thee,' and remember how my wife died in a tenement in New York City, gasping for
air and asking God to take the little girl too. Of course I don't expect you
people can prevent every one from dying of starvation, lack of proper
nourishment and tenement air, but what does following Jesus mean? I understand
that Christian people own a good many of the tenements. A member of a church was
the owner of the one where my wife died, and I have wondered if following Jesus
all the way was true in his case. I heard some people singing at a church prayer
meeting the other night,
'All for Jesus, all for Jesus,
All my being's ransomed powers,
All my thoughts, and all my doings,
All my days, and all my hours.'
and I kept wondering as I sat on the steps outside just what they meant by it.
It seems to me there's an awful lot of trouble in the world that somehow
wouldn't exist if all the people who sing such songs went and lived them out. I
suppose I don't understand. But what would Jesus do? Is that what you mean by
following His steps? It seems to me sometimes as if the people in the big
churches had good clothes and nice houses to live in, and money to spend for
luxuries, and could go away on summer vacations and all that, while the people
outside the churches, thousands of them, I mean, die in tenements, and walk the
streets for jobs, and never have a piano or a picture in the house, and grow up
in misery and drunkenness and sin."
The man suddenly gave a queer lurch over in the direction of the communion table
and laid one grimy hand on it. His hat fell upon the carpet at his feet. A stir
went through the congregation. Dr. West half rose from his pew, but as yet the
silence was unbroken by any voice or movement worth mentioning in the audience.
The man passed his other hand across his eyes, and then, without any warning,
fell heavily forward on his face, full length up the aisle. Henry Maxwell spoke:
"We will consider the service closed."
He was down the pulpit stairs and kneeling by the prostrate form before any one
else. The audience instantly rose and the aisles were crowded. Dr. West
pronounced the man alive. He had fainted away. "Some heart trouble,"
the doctor also muttered as he helped carry him out into the pastor's study.
Chapter Two
Henry Maxwell and a group of his church members remained some time in the study.
The man lay on the couch there and breathed heavily. When the question of what
to do with him came up, the minister insisted on taking the man to his own
house; he lived near by and had an extra room. Rachel Winslow said:
"Mother has no company at present. I am sure we would be glad to give him a
place with us."
She looked strongly agitated. No one noticed it particularly. They were all
excited over the strange event, the strangest that First Church people could
remember. But the minister insisted on taking charge of the man, and when a
carriage came the unconscious but living form was carried to his house; and with
the entrance of that humanity into the minister's spare room a new chapter in
Henry Maxwell's life began, and yet no one, himself least of all, dreamed of the
remarkable change it was destined to make in all his after definition of the
Christian discipleship.
The event created a great sensation in the First Church parish. People talked of
nothing else for a week. It was the general impression that the man had wandered
into the church in a condition of mental disturbance caused by his troubles, and
that all the time he was talking he was in a strange delirium of fever and
really ignorant of his surroundings. That was the most charitable construction
to put upon his action. It was the general agreement also that there was a
singular absence of anything bitter or complaining in what the man had said. He
had, throughout, spoken in a mild, apologetic tone, almost as if he were one of
the congregation seeking for light on a very difficult subject.
The third day after his removal to the minister's house there was a marked
change in his condition. The doctor spoke of it but offered no hope. Saturday
morning he still lingered, although he had rapidly failed as the week drew near
its close. Sunday morning, just before the clock struck one, he rallied and
asked if his child had come. The minister had sent for her at once as soon as he
had been able to secure her address from some letters found in the man's pocket.
He had been conscious and able to talk coherently only a few moments since his
attack.
"The child is coming. She will be here," Mr. Maxwell said as he sat
there, his face showing marks of the strain of the week's vigil; for he had
insisted on sitting up nearly every night.
"I shall never see her in this world," the man whispered. Then he
uttered with great difficulty the words, "You have been good to me. Somehow
I feel as if it was what Jesus would do."
After a few minutes he turned his head slightly, and before Mr. Maxwell could
realize the fact, the doctor said quietly, "He is gone."
The Sunday morning that dawned on the city of Raymond was exactly like the
Sunday of a week before. Mr. Maxwell entered his pulpit to face one of the
largest congregations that had ever crowded the First Church. He was haggard and
looked as if he had just risen from a long illness. His wife was at home with
the little girl, who had come on the morning train an hour after her father had
died. He lay in that spare room, his troubles over, and the minister could see
the face as he opened the Bible and arranged his different notices on the side
of the desk as he had been in the habit of doing for ten years.
The service that morning contained a new element. No one could remember when
Henry Maxwell had preached in the morning without notes. As a matter of fact he
had done so occasionally when he first entered the ministry, but for a long time
he had carefully written every word of his morning sermon, and nearly always his
evening discourses as well. It cannot be said that his sermon this morning was
striking or impressive. He talked with considerable hesitation. It was evident
that some great idea struggled in his thought for utterance, but it was not
expressed in the theme he had chosen for his preaching. It was near the close of
his sermon that he began to gather a certain strength that had been painfully
lacking at the beginning.
He closed the Bible and, stepping out at the side of the desk, faced his people
and began to talk to them about the remarkable scene of the week before.
"Our brother," somehow the words sounded a little strange coming from
his lips, "passed away this morning. I have not yet had time to learn all
his history. He had one sister living in Chicago. I have written her and have
not yet received an answer. His little girl is with us and will remain for the
time."
He paused and looked over the house. He thought he had never seen so many
earnest faces during his entire pastorate. He was not able yet to tell his
people his experiences, the crisis through which he was even now moving. But
something of his feeling passed from him to them, and it did not seem to him
that he was acting under a careless impulse at all to go on and break to them
this morning something of the message he bore in his heart.
So he went on: "The appearance and words of this stranger in the church
last Sunday made a very powerful impression on me. I am not able to conceal from
you or myself the fact that what he said, followed as it has been by his death
in my house, has compelled me to ask as I never asked before 'What does
following Jesus mean?' I am not in a position yet to utter any condemnation of
this people or, to a certain extent, of myself, either in our Christ-like
relations to this man or the numbers that he represents in the world. But all
that does not prevent me from feeling that much that the man said was so vitally
true that we must face it in an attempt to answer it or else stand condemned as
Christian disciples. A good deal that was said here last Sunday was in the
nature of a challenge to Christianity as it is seen and felt in our churches. I
have felt this with increasing emphasis every day since.
"And I do not know that any time is more appropriate than the present for
me to propose a plan, or a purpose, which has been forming in my mind as a
satisfactory reply to much that was said here last Sunday."
Again Henry Maxwell paused and looked into the faces of his people. There were
some strong, earnest men and women in the First Church.
He could see Edward Norman, editor of the Raymond DAILY NEWS. He had been a
member of the First Church for ten years.
No man was more honored in the community. There was Alexander Powers,
superintendent of the great railroad shops in Raymond, a typical railroad man,
one who had been born into the business. There sat Donald Marsh, president of
Lincoln College, situated in the suburbs of Raymond. There was Milton Wright,
one of the great merchants of Raymond, having in his employ at least one hundred
men in various shops. There was Dr. West who, although still comparatively
young, was quoted as authority in special surgical cases. There was young Jasper
Chase the author, who had written one successful book and was said to be at work
on a new novel. There was Miss Virginia Page the heiress, who through the recent
death of her father had inherited a million at least, and was gifted with
unusual attractions of person and intellect. And not least of all, Rachel
Winslow, from her seat in the choir, glowed with her peculiar beauty of light
this morning because she was so intensely interested in the whole scene.
There was some reason, perhaps, in view of such material in the First Church,
for Henry Maxwell's feeling of satisfaction whenever he considered his parish as
he had the previous Sunday. There was an unusually large number of strong,
individual characters who claimed membership there. But as he noted their faces
this morning he was simply wondering how many of them would respond to the
strange proposition he was about to make. He continued slowly, taking time to
choose his words carefully, and giving the people an impression they had never
felt before, even when he was at his best with his most dramatic delivery.
"What I am going to propose now is something which ought not to appear
unusual or at all impossible of execution. Yet I am aware that it will be so
regarded by a large number, perhaps, of the members of this church. But in order
that we may have a thorough understanding of what we are considering, I will put
my proposition very plainly, perhaps bluntly. I want volunteers from the First
Church who will pledge themselves, earnestly and honestly for an entire year,
not to do anything without first asking the question, 'What would Jesus do?' And
after asking that question, each one will follow Jesus as exactly as he knows
how, no matter what the result may be. I will of course include myself in this
company of volunteers, and shall take for granted that my church here will not
be surprised at my future conduct, as based upon this standard of action, and
will not oppose whatever is done if they think Christ would do it. Have I made
my meaning clear? At the close of the service I want all those members who are
willing to join such a company to remain and we will talk over the details of
the plan. Our motto will be, 'What would Jesus do?' Our aim will be to act just
as He would if He was in our places, regardless of immediate results. In other
words, we propose to follow Jesus' steps as closely and as literally as we
believe He taught His disciples to do. And those who volunteer to do this will
pledge themselves for an entire year, beginning with today, so to act."
Henry Maxwell paused again and looked out over his people. It is not easy to
describe the sensation that such a simple proposition apparently made. Men
glanced at one another in astonishment. It was not like Henry Maxwell to define
Christian discipleship in this way. There was evident confusion of thought over
his proposition. It was understood well enough, but there was, apparently, a
great difference of opinion as to the application of Jesus' teaching and
example.
He calmly closed the service with a brief prayer. The organist began his
postlude immediately after the benediction and the people began to go out. There
was a great deal of conversation. Animated groups stood all over the church
discussing the minister's proposition. It was evidently provoking great
discussion. After several minutes he asked all who expected to remain to pass
into the lecture-room which joined the large room on the side. He was himself
detained at the front of the church talking with several persons there, and when
he finally turned around, the church was empty. He walked over to the lecture-
room entrance and went in. He was almost startled to see the people who were
there. He had not made up his mind about any of his members, but he had hardly
expected that so many were ready to enter into such a literal testing of their
Christian discipleship as now awaited him. There were perhaps fifty present,
among them Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page, Mr. Norman, President Marsh,
Alexander Powers the railroad superintendent, Milton Wright, Dr. West and Jasper
Chase.
He closed the door of the lecture- room and went and stood before the little
group. His face was pale and his lips trembled with genuine emotion. It was to
him a genuine crisis in his own life and that of his parish. No man can tell
until he is moved by the Divine Spirit what he may do, or how he may change the
current of a lifetime of fixed habits of thought and speech and action. Henry
Maxwell did not, as we have said, yet know himself all that he was passing
through, but he was conscious of a great upheaval in his definition of Christian
discipleship, and he was moved with a depth of feeling he could not measure as
he looked into the faces of those men and women on this occasion.
It seemed to him that the most fitting word to be spoken first was that of
prayer. He asked them all to pray with him. And almost with the first syllable
he uttered there was a distinct presence of the Spirit felt by them all. As the
prayer went on, this presence grew in power. They all felt it. The room was
filled with it as plainly as if it had been visible. When the prayer closed
there was a silence that lasted several moments. All the heads were bowed. Henry
Maxwell's face was wet with tears. If an audible voice from heaven had
sanctioned their pledge to follow the Master's steps, not one person present
could have felt more certain of the divine blessing. And so the most serious
movement ever started in the First Church of Raymond was begun.
"We all understand," said he, speaking very quietly, "what we
have undertaken to do. We pledge ourselves to do everything in our daily lives
after asking the question, 'What would Jesus do?' regardless of what may be the
result to us. Some time I shall be able to tell you what a marvelous change has
come over my life within a week's time. I cannot now. But the experience I have
been through since last Sunday has left me so dissatisfied with my previous
definition of Christian discipleship that I have been compelled to take this
action. I did not dare begin it alone. I know that I am being led by the hand of
divine love in all this. The same divine impulse must have led you also.
"Do we understand fully what we have undertaken?"
"I want to ask a question," said Rachel Winslow. Every one turned
towards her. Her face glowed with a beauty that no physical loveliness could
ever create.
"I am a little in doubt as to the source of our knowledge concerning what
Jesus would do. Who is to decide for me just what He would do in my case? It is
a different age. There are many perplexing questions in our civilization that
are not mentioned in the teachings of Jesus. How am I going to tell what He
would do?"
"There is no way that I know of," replied the pastor, "except as
we study Jesus through the medium of the Holy Spirit. You remember what Christ
said speaking to His disciples about the Holy Spirit: "Howbeit when he, the
Spirit of truth, is come, he shall guide you into all the truth: for he shall
not speak from himself; but what things soever he shall hear, these shall he
speak: and he shall declare unto you the things that are to come. He shall
glorify me; for he shall take of mine, and shall declare it unto you. All things
whatsoever the Father hath are mine: therefore said I, that he taketh of mine,
and shall declare it unto you.' There is no other test that I know of. We shall
all have to decide what Jesus would do after going to that source of
knowledge."
"What if others say of us, when we do certain things, that Jesus would not
do so?" asked the superintendent of railroads.
"We cannot prevent that. But we must be absolutely honest with ourselves.
The standard of Christian action cannot vary in most of our acts."
"And yet what one church member thinks Jesus would do, another refuses to
accept as His probable course of action. What is to render our conduct uniformly
Christ-like? Will it be possible to reach the same conclusions always in all
cases?" asked President Marsh.
Mr. Maxwell was silent some time. Then he answered, "No; I don't know that
we can expect that. But when it comes to a genuine, honest, enlightened
following of Jesus' steps, I cannot believe there will be any confusion either
in our own minds or in the judgment of others. We must be free from fanaticism
on one hand and too much caution on the other. If Jesus' example is the example
for the world to follow, it certainly must be feasible to follow it. But we need
to remember this great fact. After we have asked the Spirit to tell us what
Jesus would do and have received an answer to it, we are to act regardless of
the results to ourselves. Is that understood?"
All the faces in the room were raised towards the minister in solemn assent.
There was no misunderstanding that proposition. Henry Maxwell's face quivered
again as he noted the president of the Endeavor Society with several members
seated back of the older men and women.
They remained a little longer talking over details and asking questions, and
agreed to report to one another every week at a regular meeting the result of
their experiences in following Jesus this way. Henry Maxwell prayed again. And
again as before the Spirit made Himself manifest. Every head remained bowed a
long time. They went away finally in silence. There was a feeling that prevented
speech. The pastor shook hands with them all as they went out. Then he went into
his own study room back of the pulpit and kneeled. He remained there alone
nearly half an hour. When he went home he went into the room where the dead body
lay. As he looked at the face he cried in his heart again for strength and
wisdom. But not even yet did he realize that a movement had begun which would
lead to the most remarkable series of events that the city of Raymond had ever
known.
Chapter Three
"He that saith he abideth in Him ought himself also to walk even as He
walked."
EDWARD NORMAN, editor Of the Raymond DAILY NEWS, sat in his office room Monday
morning and faced a new world of action. He had made his pledge in good faith to
do everything after asking "What would Jesus do?" and, as he supposed,
with his eyes open to all the possible results. But as the regular life of the
paper started on another week's rush and whirl of activity, he confronted it
with a degree of hesitation and a feeling nearly akin to fear.
He had come down to the office very early, and for a few minutes was by himself.
He sat at his desk in a growing thoughtfulness that finally became a desire
which he knew was as great as it was unusual. He had yet to learn, with all the
others in that little company pledged to do the Christlike thing, that the
Spirit of Life was moving in power through his own life as never before. He rose
and shut his door, and then did what he had not done for years. He kneeled down
by his desk and prayed for the Divine Presence and wisdom to direct him.
He rose with the day before him, and his promise distinct and clear in his mind.
"Now for action," he seemed to say. But he would be led by events as
fast as they came on.
He opened his door and began the routine of the office work. The managing editor
had just come in and was at his desk in the adjoining room. One of the reporters
there was pounding out something on a typewriter. Edward Norman began to write
an editorial. The DAILY NEWS was an evening paper, and Norman usually completed
his leading editorial before nine o'clock.
He had been writing for fifteen minutes when the managing editor called out:
"Here's this press report of yesterday's prize fight at the Resort. It will
make up three columns and a half. I suppose it all goes in?"
Norman was one of those newspaper men who keep an eye on every detail of the
paper. The managing editor always consulted his chief in matters of both small
and large importance. Sometimes, as in this case, it was merely a nominal
inquiry.
"Yes -- No. Let me see it."
He took the type-written matter just as it came from the telegraph editor and
ran over it carefully. Then he laid the sheets down on his desk and did some
very hard thinking.
"We won't run this today," he said finally.
The managing editor was standing in the doorway between the two rooms. He was
astounded at his chief's remark, and thought he had perhaps misunderstood him.
"What did you say?"
"Leave it out. We won't use it."
"But " The managing editor was simply dumbfounded. He stared at Norman
as if the man was out of his mind.
"I don't think, Clark, that it ought to be printed, and that's the end of
it," said Norman, looking up from his desk.
Clark seldom had any words with the chief. His word had always been law in the
office and he had seldom been known to change his mind. The circumstances now,
however, seemed to be so extraordinary that Clark could not help expressing
himself.
"Do you mean that the paper is to go to press without a word of the prize
fight in it?"
"Yes. That's what I mean."
"But it's unheard of. All the other papers will print it. What will our
subscribers say? Why, it is simply--" Clark paused, unable to find words to
say what he thought.
Norman looked at Clark thoughtfully. The managing editor was a member of a
church of a different denomination from that of Norman's. The two men had never
talked together on religious matters although they had been associated on the
paper for several years.
"Come in here a minute, Clark, and shut the door," said Norman.
Clark came in and the two men faced each other alone. Norman did not speak for a
minute. Then he said abruptly: "Clark, if Christ was editor of a daily
paper, do you honestly think He would print three columns and a half of prize
fight in it?"
"No, I don't suppose He would."
"Well, that's my only reason for shutting this account out of the NEWS. I
have decided not to do a thing in connection with the paper for a whole year
that I honestly believe Jesus would not do."
Clark could not have looked more amazed if the chief had suddenly gone crazy. In
fact, he did think something was wrong, though Mr. Norman was one of the last
men in the world, in his judgment, to lose his mind.
"What effect will that have on the paper?" he finally managed to ask
in a faint voice.
"What do you think?" asked Norman with a keen glance.
"I think it will simply ruin the paper," replied Clark promptly. He
was gathering up his bewildered senses, and began to remonstrate, "Why, it
isn't feasible to run a paper nowadays on any such basis. It's too ideal. The
world isn't ready for it. You can't make it pay. Just as sure as you live, if
you shut out this prize fight report you will lose hundreds of subscribers. It
doesn't take a prophet to see that. The very best people in town are eager to
read it. They know it has taken place, and when they get the paper this evening
they will expect half a page at least. Surely, you can't afford to disregard the
wishes of the public to such an extent. It will be a great mistake if you do, in
my opinion."
Norman sat silent a minute. Then he spoke gently but firmly.
"Clark, what in your honest opinion is the right standard for determining
conduct? Is the only right standard for every one, the probable action of Jesus
Christ? Would you say that the highest, best law for a man to live by was
contained in asking the question, What would Jesus do?' And then doing it
regardless of results? In other words, do you think men everywhere ought to
follow Jesus' example as closely as they can in their daily lives?" Clark
turned red, and moved uneasily in his chair before he answered the editor's
question.
"Why -- yes -- I suppose if you put it on the ground of what men ought to
do there is no other standard of conduct. But the question is, What is feasible?
Is it possible to make it pay? To succeed in the newspaper business we have got
to conform to custom and the recognized methods of society. We can't do as we
would in an ideal world."
"Do you mean that we can't run the paper strictly on Christian principles
and make it succeed?"
"Yes, that's just what I mean. It can't be done. We'll go bankrupt in
thirty days."
Norman did not reply at once. He was very thoughtful.
"We shall have occasion to talk this over again, Clark. Meanwhile I think
we ought to understand each other frankly. I have pledged myself for a year to
do everything connected with the paper after answering the question, What would
Jesus do?' as honestly as possible. I shall continue to do this in the belief
that not only can we succeed but that we can succeed better than we ever
did."
Clark rose. "The report does not go in?"
"It does not. There is plenty of good material to take its place, and you
know what it is."
Clark hesitated. "Are you going to say anything about the absence of the
report?"
"No, let the paper go to press as if there had been no such thing as a
prize fight yesterday."
Clark walked out of the room to his own desk feeling as if the bottom had
dropped out of everything. He was astonished, bewildered, excited and
considerably angered. His great respect for Norman checked his rising
indignation and disgust, but with it all was a feeling of growing wonder at the
sudden change of motive which had entered the office of the DAILY NEWS and
threatened, as he firmly believed, to destroy it.
Before noon every reporter, pressman and employee on the DAILY NEWS was informed
of the remarkable fact that the paper was going to press without a word in it
about the famous prize fight of Sunday. The reporters were simply astonished
beyond measure at the announcement of the fact. Every one in the stereotyping
and composing rooms had something to say about the unheard of omission. Two or
three times during the day when Mr. Norman had occasion to visit the composing
rooms the men stopped their work or glanced around their cases looking at him
curiously. He knew that he was being observed, but said nothing and did not
appear to note it.
There had been several minor changes in the paper, suggested by the editor, but
nothing marked. He was waiting and thinking deeply.
He felt as if he needed time and considerable opportunity for the exercise of
his best judgment in several matters before he answered his ever present
question in the right way. It was not because there were not a great many things
in the life of the paper that were contrary to the spirit of Christ that he did
not act at once, but because he was yet honestly in doubt concerning what action
Jesus would take.
When the DAILY NEWS came out that evening it carried to its subscribers a
distinct sensation.
The presence of the report of the prize fight could not have produced anything
equal to the effect of its omission. Hundreds of men in the hotels and stores
down town, as well as regular subscribers, eagerly opened the paper and searched
it through for the account of the great fight; not finding it, they rushed to
the NEWS stands and bought other papers. Even the newsboys had not a understood
the fact of omission. One of them was calling out "DAILY NEWS! Full 'count
great prize fight 't Resort. NEWS, sir?"
A man on the corner of the avenue close by the NEWS office bought the paper,
looked over its front page hurriedly and then angrily called the boy back.
"Here, boy! What's the matter with your paper? There's no prize fight here!
What do you mean by selling old papers?"
"Old papers nuthin'!" replied the boy indignantly. "Dat's today's
paper. What's de matter wid you?"
"But there is no account of the prize fight here! Look!"
The man handed back the paper and the boy glanced at k hurriedly. Then he
whistled, while a bewildered look crept over his face. Seeing another boy
running by with papers he called out "Say, Sam, le'me see your pile."
A hasty examination revealed the remarkable fact that all the copies of the NEWS
were silent on the subject of the prize fight.
"Here, give me another paper!" shouted the customer; "one with
the prize fight account."
He received it and walked off, while the two boys remained comparing notes and
lost in wonder at the result. "Sump'n slipped a cog in the Newsy,
sure," said the first boy. But he couldn't tell why, and ran over to the
NEWS office to find out.
There were several other boys at the delivery room and they were all excited and
disgusted. The amount of slangy remonstrance hurled at the clerk back of the
long counter would have driven any one else to despair.
He was used to more or less of it all the time, and consequently hardened to it.
Mr. Norman was just coming downstairs on his way home, and he paused as he went
by the door of the delivery room and looked in.
"What's the matter here, George?" he asked the clerk as he noted the
unusual confusion.
"The boys say they can't sell any copies of the NEWS tonight because the
prize fight isn't in it," replied George, looking curiously at the editor
as so many of the employees had done during the day. Mr. Norman hesitated a
moment, then walked into the room and confronted the boys.
"How many papers are there here? Boys, count them out, and I'll buy them
tonight."
There was a combined stare and a wild counting of papers on the part of the
boys.
"Give them their money, George, and if any of the other boys come in with
the same complaint buy their unsold copies. Is that fair?" he asked the
boys who were smitten into unusual silence by the unheard of action on the part
of the editor.
"Fair! Well, I should--But will you keep this up? Will dis be a continual
performance for the benefit of de fraternity?"
Mr. Norman smiled slightly but he did not think it was necessary to answer the
question.
He walked out of the office and went home. On the way he could not avoid that
constant query, "Would Jesus have done it?" It was not so much with
reference to this last transaction as to the entire motive that had urged him on
since he had made the promise.
The newsboys were necessarily sufferers through the action he had taken. Why
should they lose money by it? They were not to blame. He was a rich man and
could afford to put a little brightness into their lives if he chose to do it.
He believed, as he went on his way home, that Jesus would have done either what
he did or something similar in order to be free from any possible feeling of
injustice.
He was not deciding these questions for any one else but for his own conduct. He
was not in a position to dogmatize, and he felt that he could answer only with
his own judgment and conscience as to his interpretation of his Master's
probable action. The falling off in sales of the paper he had in a measure
foreseen. But he was yet to realize the full extent of the loss to the paper, if
such a policy should be continued.
Chapter Four
DURING the week he was in receipt of numerous letters commenting on the absence
from the News of the account of the prize fight. Two or three of these letters
may be of interest.
Editor of the News:
Dear Sir -- I have been thinking for some time of changing my paper. I want a
journal that is up to the times, progressive and enterprising, supplying the
public demand at all points. The recent freak of your paper in refusing to print
the account of the famous contest at the Resort has decided me finally to change
my paper.
Please discontinue it.
Very truly yours,-------
Here followed the name of a business man who had been a subscriber for many
years.
Edward Norman,
Editor of the Daily News, Raymond:
Dear Ed.--What is this sensation you have given the people of your burg? What
new policy have you taken up? Hope you don't intend to try the "Reform
Business" through the avenue of the press. It's dangerous to experiment
much along that line. Take my advice and stick to the enterprising modern
methods you have made so successful for the News. The public wants prize fights
and such. Give it what it wants, and let some one else do the reforming
business.
Yours,-------
Here followed the name of one of Norman's old friends, the editor of a daily in
an adjoining town.
My Dear Mr. Norman:
I hasten to write you a note of appreciation for the evident carrying out of
your promise. It is a splendid beginning and no one feels the value of it more
than I do. I know something of what it will cost you, but not all. Your pastor,
HENRY MAXWELL.
One other letter which he opened immediately after reading this from Maxwell
revealed to him something of the loss to his business that possibly awaited him.
Mr. Edward Norman,
Editor of the Daily News:
Dear Sir -- At the expiration of my advertising limit, you will do me the favor
not to continue it as you have done heretofore. I enclose check for payment in
full and shall consider my account with your paper closed after date.
Very truly yours,-------
Here followed the name of one of the largest dealers in tobacco in the city. He
had been in the habit of inserting a column of conspicuous advertising and
paying for it a very large price.
Norman laid this letter down thoughtfully, and then after a moment he took up a
copy of his paper and looked through the advertising columns. There was no
connection implied in the tobacco merchant's letter between the omission of the
prize fight and the withdrawal of the advertisement, but he could not avoid
putting the two together. In point of fact, he afterward learned that the
tobacco dealer withdrew his advertisement because he had heard that the editor
of the NEWS was about to enter upon some queer reform policy that would be
certain to reduce its subscription list.
But the letter directed Norman's attention to the advertising phase of his
paper. He had not considered this before.
As he glanced over the columns he could not escape the conviction that his
Master could not permit some of them in his paper.
What would He do with that other long advertisement of choice liquors and
cigars? As a member of a church and a respected citizen, he had incurred no
special censure because the saloon men advertised in his columns. No one thought
anything about it. It was all legitimate business. Why not? Raymond enjoyed a
system of high license, and the saloon and the billiard hall and the beer garden
were a part of the city's Christian civilization. He was simply doing what every
other business man in Raymond did. And it was one of the best paying sources of
revenue. What would the paper do if it cut these out? Could it live? That was
the question. But was that the question after all? "What would Jesus
do?" That was the question he was answering, or trying to answer, this
week. Would Jesus advertise whiskey and tobacco in his paper?
Edward Norman asked it honestly, and after a prayer for help and wisdom he asked
Clark to come into the office.
Clark came in, feeling that the paper was at a crisis, and prepared for almost
anything after his Monday morning experience. This was Thursday.
"Clark," said Norman, speaking slowly and carefully, "I have been
looking at our advertising columns and have decided to dispense with some of the
matter as soon as the contracts run out. I wish you would notify the advertising
agent not to solicit or renew the ads that I have marked here."
He handed the paper with the marked places over to Clark, who took it and looked
over the columns with a very serious air.
"This will mean a great loss to the NEWS. How long do you think you can
keep this sort of thing up?" Clark was astounded at the editor's action and
could not understand it.
"Clark, do you think if Jesus was the editor and proprietor of a daily
paper in Raymond He would permit advertisements of whiskey and tobacco in
it?"
"Well no--I--don't suppose He would. But what has that to do with us? We
can't do as He would. Newspapers can't be run on any such basis."
"Why not?" asked Norman quietly.
"Why not? Because they will lose more money than they make, that's
all!" Clark spoke out with an irritation that he really felt. "We
shall certainly bankrupt the paper with this sort of business policy."
"Do you think so?" Norman asked the question not as if he expected an
answer, but simply as if he were talking with himself. After a pause he said:
"You may direct Marks to do as I have said. I believe it is what Christ
would do, and as I told you, Clark, that is what I have promised to try to do
for a year, regardless of what the results may be to me. I cannot believe that
by any kind of reasoning we could reach a conclusion justifying our Lord in the
advertisement, in this age, of whiskey and tobacco in a newspaper. There are
some other advertisements of a doubtful character I shall study into. Meanwhile,
I feel a conviction in regard to these that cannot be silenced."
Clark went back to his desk feeling as if he had been in the presence of a very
peculiar person. He could not grasp the meaning of it all. He felt enraged and
alarmed. He was sure any such policy would ruin the paper as soon as it became
generally known that the editor was trying to do everything by such an absurd
moral standard. What would become of business if this standard was adopted? It
would upset every custom and introduce endless confusion. It was simply
foolishness. It was downright idiocy. So Clark said to himself, and when Marks
was informed of the action he seconded the managing editor with some very
forcible ejaculations. What was the matter with the chief? Was he insane? Was he
going to bankrupt the whole business?
But Edward Norman had not yet faced his most serious problem. When he came down
to the office Friday morning he was confronted with the usual program for the
Sunday morning edition. The NEWS was one one of the few evening papers in
Raymond to issue a Sunday edition, and it had always been remarkably successful
financially. There was an average of one page of literary and religious items to
thirty or forty pages of sport, theatre, gossip, fashion, society and political
material. This made a very interesting magazine of all sorts of reading matter,
and had always been welcomed by all the subscribers, church members and all, as
a Sunday morning necessity. Edward Norman now faced this fact and put to himself
the question: "What would Jesus do?" If He was editor of a paper,
would he deliberately plan to put into the homes of all the church people and
Christians of Raymond such a collection of reading matter on the one day in the
week which ought to be given up to something better holier? He was of course
familiar with the regular arguments of the Sunday paper, that the public needed
something of the sort; and the working man especially, who would not go to
church any way, ought to have something entertaining and instructive on Sunday,
his only day of rest. But suppose the Sunday morning paper did not pay? Suppose
there was no money in it? How eager would the editor or publisher be then to
supply this crying need of the poor workman? Edward Norman communed honestly
with himself over the subject.
Taking everything into account, would Jesus probably edit a Sunday morning
paper? No matter whether it paid. That was not the question. As a matter of
fact, the Sunday NEWS paid so well that it would be a direct loss of thousands
of dollars to discontinue it. Besides, the regular subscribers had paid for a
seven-day paper. Had he any right now to give them less than they supposed they
had paid for?
He was honestly perplexed by the question. So much was involved in the
discontinuance of the Sunday edition that for the first time he almost decided
to refuse to be guided by the standard of Jesus' probable action. He was sole
proprietor of the paper; it was his to shape as he chose. He had no board of
directors to consult as to policy. But as he sat there surrounded by the usual
quantity of material for the Sunday edition he reached some definite
conclusions. And among them was a determination to call in the force of the
paper and frankly state his motive and purpose. He sent word for Clark and the
other men it the office, including the few reporters who were in the building
and the foreman, with what men were in the composing room (it was early in the
morning and they were not all in) to come into the mailing room. This was a
large room, and the men came in curiously and perched around on the tables and
counters. It was a very unusual proceeding, but they all agreed that the paper
was being run on new principles anyhow, and they all watched Mr. Norman
carefully as he spoke.
"I called you in here to let you know my further plans for the NEWS. I
propose certain changes which I believe are necessary. I understand very well
that some things I have already done are regarded by the men as very strange. I
wish to state my motive in doing what I have done."
Here he told the men what he had already told Clark, and they stared as Clark
had done, and looked as painfully conscious.
"Now, in acting on this standard of conduct I have reached a conclusion
which will, no doubt, cause some surprise.
"I have decided that the Sunday morning edition of the NEWS shall be
discontinued after next Sunday's issue. I shall state in that issue my reasons
for discontinuing. In order to make up to the subscribers the amount of reading
matter they may suppose themselves entitled to, we can issue a double number on
Saturday, as is done by many evening papers that make no attempt at a Sunday
edition. I am convinced that from a Christian point of view more harm than good
has been done by our Sunday morning paper. I do not believe that Jesus would be
responsible for it if He were in my place today. It will occasion some trouble
to arrange the details caused by this change with the advertisers and
subscribers. That is for me to look after. The change itself is one that will
take place. So far as I can see, the loss will fall on myself. Neither the
reporters nor the pressmen need make any particular changes in their
plans."
He looked around the room and no one spoke. He was struck for the first time in
his life with the fact that in all the years of his newspaper life he had never
had the force of the paper together in this way. Would Jesus do that? That is,
would He probably run a newspaper on some loving family plan, where editors,
reporters, pressmen and all meet to discuss and devise and plan for the making
of a paper that should have in view--
He caught himself drawing almost away from the facts of typographical unions and
office rules and reporters' enterprise and all the cold, businesslike methods
that make a great daily successful. But still the vague picture that came up in
the mailing room would not fade away when he had gone into his office and the
men had gone back to their places with wonder in their looks and questions of
all sorts on their tongues as they talked over the editor's remarkable actions.
Clark came in and had a long, serious talk with his chief. He was thoroughly
roused, and his protest almost reached the point of resigning his place. Norman
guarded himself carefully. Every minute of the interview was painful to him, but
he felt more than ever the necessity of doing the Christ-like thing. Clark was a
very valuable man. It would be difficult to fill his place. But he was not able
to give any reasons for continuing the Sunday paper that answered the question,
"What would Jesus do?" by letting Jesus print that edition.
"It comes to this, then," said Clark frankly, "you will bankrupt
the paper in thirty days. We might as well face that future fact."
"I don't think we shall. Will you stay by the NEWS until it is
bankrupt?" asked Norman with a strange smile.
"Mr. Norman, I don't understand you. You are not the same man this week
that I always knew before."
"I don't know myself either, Clark. Something remarkable has caught me up
and borne me on. But I was never more convinced of final success and power for
the paper. You have not answered my question. Will you stay with me?"
Clark hesitated a moment and finally said yes. Norman shook hands with him and
turned to his desk. Clark went back into his room, stirred by a number of
conflicting emotions. He had never before known such an exciting and mentally
disturbing week, and he felt now as if he was connected with an enterprise that
might at any moment collapse and ruin him and all connected with it.
Chapter Five
SUNDAY morning dawned again on Raymond, and Henry Maxwell's church was again
crowded. Before the service began Edward Norman attracted great attention. He
sat quietly in his usual place about three seats from the pulpit. The Sunday
morning issue of the NEWS containing the statement of its discontinuance had
been expressed in such remarkable language that every reader was struck by it.
No such series of distinct sensations had ever disturbed the usual business
custom of Raymond. The events connected with the NEWS were not all. People were
eagerly talking about strange things done during the week by Alexander Powers at
the railroad shops, and Milton Wright in his stores on the avenue. The service
progressed upon a distinct wave of excitement in the pews. Henry Maxwell faced
it all with a calmness which indicated a strength and purpose more than usual.
His prayers were very helpful. His sermon was not so easy to describe. How would
a minister be apt to preach to his people if he came before them after an entire
week of eager asking, "How would Jesus preach? What would He probably
say?" It is very certain that he did not preach as he had done two Sundays
before. Tuesday of the past week he had stood by the grave of the dead stranger
and said the words, "Earth to earth, ashes to ashes, dust to dust,"
and still he was moved by the spirit of a deeper impulse than he could measure
as he thought of his people and yearned for the Christ message when he should be
in his pulpit again.
Now that Sunday had come and the people were there to hear, what would the
Master tell them? He agonized over his preparation for them, and yet he knew he
had not been able to fit his message into his ideal of the Christ. Nevertheless
no one in the First Church could remember ever hearing such a sermon before.
There was in it rebuke for sin, especially hypocrisy, there was definite rebuke
of the greed of wealth and the selfishness of fashion, two things that First
Church never heard rebuked this way before, and there was a love of his people
that gathered new force as the sermon went on. When it was finished there were
those who were saying in their hearts, "The Spirit moved that sermon."
And they were right.
Then Rachel Winslow rose to sing, this time after the sermon, by Mr. Maxwell's
request. Rachel's singing did not provoke applause this time. What deeper
feeling carried the people's hearts into a reverent silence and tenderness of
thought? Rachel was beautiful. But her consciousness of her remarkable
loveliness had always marred her singing with those who had the deepest
spiritual feeling. It had also marred her rendering of certain kinds of music
with herself. Today this was all gone. There was no lack of power in her grand
voice. But there was an actual added element of humility and purity which the
audience distinctly felt and bowed to.
Before service closed Mr. Maxwell asked those who had remained the week before
to stay again for a few moments of consultation, and any others who were willing
to make the pledge taken at that time. When he was at liberty he went into the
lecture-room. To his astonishment it was almost filled. This time a large
proportion of young people had come, but among them were a few business men and
officers of the church.
As before, he, Maxwell, asked them to pray with him. And, as before, a distinct
answer came from the presence of the divine Spirit. There was no doubt in the
minds of any present that what they purposed to do was so clearly in line with
the divine will, that a blessing rested upon it in a very special manner.
They remained some time to ask questions and consult together. There was a
feeling of fellowship such as they had never known in their church membership.
Mr. Norman's action was well understood by them all, and he answered several
questions.
"What will be the probable result of your discontinuance of the Sunday
paper?" asked Alexander Powers, who sat next to him.
"I don't know yet. I presume it will result in the falling off of
subscriptions and advertisements. I anticipate that."
"Do you have any doubts about your action. I mean, do you regret it, or
fear it is not what Jesus would do?" asked Mr. Maxwell.
"Not in the least. But I would like to ask, for my own satisfaction, if any
of you here think Jesus would issue a Sunday morning paper?"
No one spoke for a minute. Then Jasper Chase said, "We seem to think alike
on that, but I have been puzzled several times during the week to know just what
He would do. It is not always an easy question to answer."
"I find that trouble," said Virginia Page. She sat by Rachel Winslow.
Every one who knew Virginia Page was wondering how she would succeed in keeping
her promise. "I think perhaps I find it specially difficult to answer that
question on account of my money. Our Lord never owned any property, and there is
nothing in His example to guide me in the use of mine. I am studying and
praying. I think I see clearly a part of what He would do, but not all. What
would He do with a million dollars? is my question really. I confess I am not
yet able to answer it to my satisfaction.
"I could tell you what you could do with a part of it, said Rachel, turning
her face toward Virginia. "That does not trouble me," replied Virginia
with a slight smile. "What I am trying to discover is a principle that will
enable me to come to the nearest possible to His action as it ought to influence
the entire course of my life so far as my wealth and its use are
concerned."
"That will take time," said the minister slowly. All the rest of the
room were thinking hard of the same thing. Milton Wright told something of his
experience. He was gradually working out a plan for his business relations with
his employees, and it was opening up a new world to him and to them. A few of
the young men told of special attempts to answer the question. There was almost
general consent over the fact that the application of the Christ spirit and
practice to the everyday life was the serious thing. It required a knowledge of
Him and an insight into His motives that most of them did not yet possess.
When they finally adjourned after a silent prayer that marked with growing power
the Divine Presence, they went away discussing earnestly their difficulties and
seeking light from one another.
Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page went out together. Edward Norman and Milton
Wright became so interested in their mutual conference that they walked on past
Norman's house and came back together. Jasper Chase and the president of the
Endeavor Society stood talking earnestly in one corner of the room. Alexander
Powers and Henry Maxwell remained, even after the others had gone.
"I want you to come down to the shops tomorrow and see my plan and talk to
the men. Somehow I feel as if you could get nearer to them than any one else
just now."
"I don't know about that, but I will come," replied Mr. Maxwell a
little sadly. How was he fitted to stand before two or three hundred working men
and give them a message? Yet in the moment of his weakness, as he asked the
question, he rebuked himself for it. What would Jesus do? That was an end to the
discussion.
He went down the next day and found Mr. Powers in his office. It lacked a few
minutes of twelve and the superintendent said, "Come upstairs, and I'll
show you what I've been trying to do."
They went through the machine shop, climbed a long flight of stairs and entered
a very large, empty room. It had once been used by the company for a store room.
"Since making that promise a week ago I have had a good many things to
think of," said the superintendent, "and among them is this: The
company gives me the use of this room, and I am going to fit it up with tables
and a coffee plant in the corner there where those steam pipes are. My plan is
to provide a good place where the men can come up and eat their noon lunch, and
give them, two or three times a week, the privilege of a fifteen minutes' talk
on some subject that will be a real help to them in their lives."
Maxwell looked surprised and asked if the men would come for any such purpose.
"Yes, they'll come. After all, I know the men pretty well. They are among
the most intelligent working men in the country today. But they are, as a whole,
entirely removed from church influence. I asked, 'What would Jesus do?' and
among other things it seemed to me He would begin to act in some way to add to
the lives of these men more physical and spiritual comfort. It is a very little
thing, this room and what it represents, but I acted on the first impulse, to do
the first thing that appealed to my good sense, and I want to work out this
idea. I want you to speak to the men when they come up at noon. I have asked
them to come up and see the place and I'll tell them something about it."
Maxwell was ashamed to say how uneasy he felt at being asked to speak a few
words to a company of working men. How could he speak without notes, or to such
a crowd? He was honestly in a condition of genuine fright over the prospect. He
actually felt afraid of facing those men. He shrank from the ordeal of
confronting such a crowd, so different from the Sunday audiences he was familiar
with.
There were a dozen rude benches and tables in the room, and when the noon
whistle sounded the men poured upstairs from the machine shops below and,
seating themselves at the tables, began to cat their lunch. There were present
about three hundred of them. They had read the superintendent's notice which he
had posted up in various places, and came largely out of curiosity.
They were favorably impressed. The room was large and airy, free from smoke and
dust, and well warmed from the steam pipes. At about twenty minutes to one Mr.
Powers told the men what he had in mind. He spoke very simply, like one who
understands thoroughly the character of his audience, and then introduced the
Rev. Henry Maxwell of the First Church, his pastor, who had consented to speak a
few minutes.
Maxwell will never forget the feeling with which for the first time he stood
before the grimy-faced audience of working men. Like hundreds of other
ministers, he had never spoken to any gatherings except those made up of people
of his own class in the sense that they were familiar in their dress and
education and habits. This was a new world to him, and nothing but his new rule
of conduct could have made possible his message and its effect. He spoke on the
subject of satisfaction with life; what caused it, what its real sources were.
He had the great good sense on this his first appearance not to recognize the
men as a class distinct from himself. He did not use the term working man, and
did not say a word to suggest any difference between their lives and his own.
The men were pleased. A good many of them shook hands with him before going down
to their work, and the minister telling it all to his wife when he reached home,
said that never in all his life had he known the delight he then felt in having
the handshake from a man of physical labor. The day marked an important one in
his Christian experience, more important than he knew. It was the beginning of a
fellowship between him and the working world. It was the first plank laid down
to help bridge the chasm between the church and labor in Raymond.
Alexander Powers went back to his desk that afternoon much pleased with his plan
and seeing much help in it for the men. He knew where he could get some good
tables from an abandoned eating house at one of the stations down the road, and
he saw how the coffee arrangement could be made a very attractive feature. The
men had responded even better than he anticipated, and the whole thing could not
help being a great benefit to them.
He took up the routine of his work with a glow of satisfaction. After all, he
wanted to do as Jesus would, he said to himself.
It was nearly four o'clock when he opened one of the company's long envelopes
which he supposed contained orders for the purchasing of stores. He ran over the
first page of typewritten matter in his usual quick, business-like manner,
before he saw that what he was reading was not intended for his office but for
the superintendent of the freight department.
He turned over a page mechanically, not meaning to read what was not addressed
to him, but before he knew it, he was in possession of evidence which
conclusively proved that the company was engaged in a systematic violation of
the Interstate Commerce Laws of the United States. It was as distinct and
unequivocal a breaking of law as if a private citizen should enter a house and
rob the inmates. The discrimination shown in rebates was in total contempt of
all the statutes. Under the laws of the state it was also a distinct violation
of certain provisions recently passed by the legislature to prevent railroad
trusts. There was no question that he had in his hands evidence sufficient to
convict the company of willful, intelligent violation of the law of the
commission and the law of the state also.
He dropped the papers on his desk as if they were poison, and instantly the
question flashed across his mind, "What would Jesus do?" He tried to
shut the question out. He tried to reason with himself by saying it was none of
his business. He had known in a more or less definite way, as did nearly all the
officers of the company, that this had been going on right along on nearly all
the roads. He was not in a position, owing to his place in the shops, to prove
anything direct, and he had regarded it as a matter which did not concern him at
all. The papers now before him revealed the entire affair. They had through some
carelessness been addressed to him. What business of his was it? If he saw a man
entering his neighbor's house to steal, would it not be his duty to inform the
officers of the law? Was a railroad company such a different thing? Was it under
a different rule of conduct, so that it could rob the public and defy law and be
undisturbed because it was such a great organization? What would Jesus do? Then
there was his family. Of course, if he took any steps to inform the commission
it would mean the loss of his position. His wife and daughter had always enjoyed
luxury and a good place in society. If he came out against this lawlessness as a
witness it would drag him into courts, his motives would be misunderstood, and
the whole thing would end in his disgrace and the loss of his position. Surely
it was none of his business. He could easily get the papers back to the freight
department and no one be the wiser. Let the iniquity go on. Let the law be
defied. What was it to him? He would work out his plans for bettering the
condition just before him. What more could a man do in this railroad business
when there was so much going on anyway that made it impossible to live by the
Christian standard? But what would Jesus do if He knew the facts? That was the
question that confronted Alexander Powers as the day wore into evening.
The lights in the office had been turned on. The whirr of the great engine and
the clash of the planers in the big shop continued until six o'clock. Then the
whistle blew, the engine slowed up, the men dropped their tools and ran for the
block house.
Powers heard the familiar click, click, of the clocks as the men filed past the
window of the block house just outside. He said to his clerks, "I'm not
going just yet. I have something extra tonight." He waited until he heard
the last man deposit his block. The men behind the block case went out. The
engineer and his assistants had work for half an hour but they went out by
another door.
At seven o'clock any one who had looked into the superintendent's office would
have seen an unusual sight. He was kneeling, and his face was buried in his
hands as he bowed his head upon the papers on his desk.
Chapter Six
"If any man cometh unto me and hateth not his own father and mother and
wife and children and brethren and sisters, yea, and his own life also, he
cannot be my disciple."
"And whosoever forsaketh not all that he hath, he cannot be my
disciple."
WHEN Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page separated after the meeting at the First
Church on Sunday they agreed to continue their conversation the next day.
Virginia asked Rachel to come and lunch with her at noon, and Rachel accordingly
rang the bell at the Page mansion about half-past eleven. Virginia herself met
her and the two were soon talking earnestly.
"The fact is," Rachel was saying, after they had been talking a few
moments, "I cannot reconcile it with my judgment of what Christ would do. I
cannot tell another person what to do, but I feel that I ought not to accept
this offer."
"What will you do then?" asked Virginia with great interest.
"I don't know yet, but I have decided to refuse this offer."
Rachel picked up a letter that had been lying in her lap and ran over its
contents again. It was a letter from the manager of a comic opera offering her a
place with a large traveling company of the season. The salary was a very large
figure, and the prospect held out by the manager was flattering. He had heard
Rachel sing that Sunday morning when the stranger had interrupted the service.
He had been much impressed. There was money in that voice and it ought to be
used in comic opera, so said the letter, and the manager wanted a reply as soon
as possible.
"There's no great virtue in saying 'No' to this offer when I have the other
one," Rachel went on thoughtfully. "That's harder to decide. But I've
about made up my mind. To tell the, truth, Virginia, I'm completely convinced in
the first case that Jesus would never use any talent like a good voice just to
make money. But now, take this concert offer. Here is a reputable company, to
travel with an impersonator and a violinist and a male quartet, all people of
good reputation. I'm asked to go as one of the company and sing leading soprano.
The salary--I mentioned it, didn't I?--is guaranteed to be $200 a month for the
season. But I don't feel satisfied that Jesus would go. What do you think?"
"You mustn't ask me to decide for you," replied Virginia with a sad
smile. "I believe Mr. Maxwell was right when he said we must each one of us
decide according to the judgment we feel for ourselves to be Christ-like. I am
having a harder time than you are, dear, to decide what He would do."
"Are you?" Rachel asked. She rose and walked over to the window and
looked out. Virginia came and stood by her. The street was crowded with life and
the two young women looked at it silently for a moment. Suddenly Virginia broke
out as Rachel had never heard her before:
"Rachel, what does all this contrast in conditions mean to you as you ask
this question of what Jesus would do? It maddens me to think that the society in
which I have been brought up, the same to which we are both said to belong, is
satisfied year after year to go on dressing and eating and having a good time,
giving and receiving entertainments, spending its money on houses and luxuries
and, occasionally, to ease its conscience, donating, without any personal
sacrifice, a little money to charity. I have been educated, as you have, in one
of the most expensive schools in America; launched into society as an heiress;
supposed to be in a very enviable position. I'm perfectly well; I can travel or
stay at home. I can do as I please. I can gratify almost any want or desire; and
yet when I honestly try to imagine Jesus living the life I have lived and am
expected to live, and doing for the rest of my life what thousands of other rich
people do, I am under condemnation for being one of the most wicked, selfish,
useless creatures in all the world. I have not looked out of this window for
weeks without a feeling of horror toward myself as I see the humanity that
passes by this house."
Virginia turned away and walked up and down the room. Rachel watched her and
could not repress the rising tide of her own growing definition of discipleship.
Of what Christian use was her own talent of song? Was the best she could do to
sell her talent for so much a month, go on a concert company's tour, dress
beautifully, enjoy the excitement of public applause and gain a reputation as a
great singer? Was that what Jesus would do?
She was not morbid. She was in sound health, was conscious of her great powers
as a singer, and knew that if she went out into public life she could make a
great deal of money and become well known. It is doubtful if she overestimated
her ability to accomplish all she thought herself capable of. And Virginia--what
she had just said smote Rachel with great force because of the similar position
in which the two friends found themselves.
Lunch was announced and they went out and were joined by Virginia's grandmother,
Madam Page, a handsome, stately woman of sixty-five, and Virginia's brother
Rollin, a young man who spent most of his time at one of the clubs and had no
ambition for anything but a growing admiration for Rachel Winslow, and whenever
she dined or lunched at the Page's, if he knew of it he always planned to be at
home.
These three made up the Page family. Virginia's father had been a banker and
grain speculator. Her mother had died ten years before, her father within the
past year. The grandmother, a Southern woman in birth and training, had all the
traditions and feelings that accompany the possession of wealth and social
standing that have never been disturbed. She was a shrewd, careful business
woman of more than average ability. The family property and wealth were
invested, in large measure, under her personal care. Virginia's portion was,
without any restriction, her own. She had been trained by her father to
understand the ways of the business world, and even the grandmother had been
compelled to acknowledge the girl's capacity for taking care of her own money.
Perhaps two persons could not be found anywhere less capable of understanding a
girl like Virginia than Madam Page and Rollin. Rachel, who had known the family
since she was a girl playmate of Virginia's, could not help thinking of what
confronted Virginia in her own home when she once decided on the course which
she honestly believed Jesus would take. Today at lunch, as she recalled
Virginia's outbreak in the front room, she tried to picture the scene that would
at some time occur between Madam Page and her granddaughter.
"I understand that you are going on the stage, Miss Winslow. We shall all
be delighted, I'm sure," said Rollin during the conversation, which had not
been very animated.
Rachel colored and felt annoyed. "Who told you?" she asked, while
Virginia, who had been very silent and reserved, suddenly roused herself and
appeared ready to join in the talk.
"Oh! we hear a thing or two on the street. Besides, every one saw Crandall
the manager at church two weeks ago. He doesn't go to church to hear the
preaching. In fact, I know other people who don't either, not when there's
something better to hear."
Rachel did not color this time, but she answered quietly, "You're mistaken.
I'm not going on the stage."
"It's a great pity. You'd make a hit. Everybody is talking about your
singing."
This time Rachel flushed with genuine anger. Before she could say anything,
Virginia broke in: "Whom do you mean by 'everybody?'"
"Whom? I mean all the people who hear Miss Winslow on Sundays. What other
time do they hear her? It's a great pity, I say, that the general public outside
of Raymond cannot hear her voice."
"Let us talk about something else," said Rachel a little sharply.
Madam Page glanced at her and spoke with a gentle courtesy.
"My dear, Rollin never could pay an indirect compliment. He is like his
father in that. But we are all curious to know something of your plans. We claim
the right from old acquaintance, you know; and Virginia has already told us of
your concert company offer."
"I supposed of course that was public property," said Virginia,
smiling across the table. "I was in the NEWS office day before
yesterday."
"Yes, yes," replied Rachel hastily. "I understand that, Madam
Page. Well, Virginia and I have been talking about it. I have decided not to
accept, and that is as far as I have gone at present."
Rachel was conscious of the fact that the conversation had, up to this point,
been narrowing her hesitation concerning the concert company's offer down to a
decision that would absolutely satisfy her own judgment of Jesus' probable
action. It had been the last thing in the world, however, that she had desired,
to have her decision made in any way so public as this. Somehow what Rollin Page
had said and his manner in saying it had hastened her decision in the matter.
"Would you mind telling us, Rachel, your reasons for refusing the offer? It
looks like a great opportunity for a young girl like you. Don't you think the
general public ought to hear you? I feel like Rollin about that. A voice like
yours belongs to a larger audience than Raymond and the First Church."
Rachel Winslow was naturally a girl of great reserve. She shrank from making her
plans or her thoughts public. But with all her repression there was possible in
her an occasional sudden breaking out that was simply an impulsive, thoroughly
frank, truthful expression of her most inner personal feeling. She spoke now in
reply to Madam Page in one of those rare moments of unreserve that added to the
attractiveness of her whole character.
"I have no other reason than a conviction that Jesus Christ would do the
same thing," she said, looking into Madam Page's eyes with a clear, earnest
gaze.
Madam Page turned red and Rollin stared. Before her grandmother could say
anything, Virginia spoke. Her rising color showed how she was stirred.
Virginia's pale, clear complexion was that of health, but it was generally in
marked contrast with Rachel's tropical type of beauty.
"Grandmother, you know we promised to make that the standard of our conduct
for a year. Mr. Maxwell's proposition was plain to all who heard it. We have not
been able to arrive at our decisions very rapidly. The difficulty in knowing
what Jesus would do has perplexed Rachel and me a good deal."
Madam Page looked sharply at Virginia before she said anything.
"Of course I understand Mr. Maxwell's statement. It is perfectly
impracticable to put it into practice. I felt confident at the time that those
who promised would find it out after a trial and abandon it as visionary and
absurd. I have nothing to say about Miss Winslow's affairs, but," she
paused and continued with a sharpness that was new to Rachel, "I hope you
have no foolish notions in this matter, Virginia."
"I have a great many notions," replied Virginia quietly. "Whether
they are foolish or not depends upon my right understanding of what He would do.
As soon as I find out I shall do it."
"Excuse me, ladies," said Rollin, rising from the table. "The
conversation is getting beyond my depth. I shall retire to the library for a
cigar."
He went out of the dining-room and there was silence for a moment. Madam Page
waited until the servant had brought in something and then asked her to go out.
She was angry and her anger was formidable, although checked I m some measure by
the presence of Rachel.
"I am older by several years than you, young ladies," she said, and
her traditional type of bearing seemed to Rachel to rise up like a great frozen
wall between her and every conception of Jesus as a sacrifice. "What you
have promised, in a spirit of false emotion I presume, is impossible of
performance."
"Do you mean, grandmother, that we cannot possibly act as our Lord would?
or do you mean that, if we try to, we shall offend the customs and prejudices of
society?" asked Virginia.
"It is not required! It is not necessary! Besides how can you act with
any--" Madam Page paused, broke off her sentence, and then turned to
Rachel. "What will your mother say to your decision? My dear, is it not
foolish? What do you expect to do with your voice anyway?"
"I don't know what mother will say yet," Rachel answered, with a great
shrinking from trying to give her mother's probable answer. If there was a woman
in all Raymond with great ambitions for her daughter's success as a singer, Mrs.
Winslow was that woman.
"Oh! you will see it in a different light after wiser thought of it. My
dear," continued Madam Page rising from the table, "you will live to
regret it if you do not accept the concert company's offer or something like
it."
Rachel said something that contained a hint of the struggle she was still
having. And after a little she went away, feeling that her departure was to be
followed by a very painful conversation between Virginia and her grandmother. As
she afterward learned, Virginia passed through a crisis of feeling during that
scene with her grandmother that hastened her final decision as to the use of her
money and her social position.
Chapter Seven
RACHEL was glad to escape and be by herself. A plan was slowly forming in her
mind, and she wanted to be alone and think it out carefully. But before she had
walked two blocks she was annoyed to find Rollin Page walking beside her.
"Sorry to disturb your thoughts, Miss Winslow, but I happened to be going
your way and had an idea you might not object. In fact, I've been walking here
for a whole block and you haven't objected."
"I did not see you," said Rachel briefly.
"I wouldn't mind that if you only thought of me once in a while," said
Rollin suddenly. He took one last nervous puff on his cigar, tossed it into the
street and walked along with a pale look on his face.
Rachel was surprised, but not startled. She had known Rollin as a boy, and there
had been a time when they had used each other's first name familiarly. Lately,
however, something in Rachel's manner had put an end to that. She was used to
his direct attempts at compliments and was sometimes amused by them. Today she
honestly wished him anywhere else.
"Do you ever think of me, Miss Winslow?" asked Rollin after a pause.
"Oh, yes, quite often!" said Rachel with a smile.
"Are you thinking of me now?"
"Yes. That is--yes--I am."
"What?"
"Do you want me to be absolutely truthful?"
"Of course."
"Then I was thinking that I wished you were not here." Rollin bit his
lip and looked gloomy.
"Now look here, Rachel--oh, I know that's forbidden, but I've got to speak
some time!--you know how I feel. What makes you treat me so? You used to like me
a little, you know."
"Did I? Of course we used to get on very well as boy and girl. But we are
older now."
Rachel still spoke in the light, easy way she had used since her first annoyance
at seeing him. She was still somewhat preoccupied with her plan which had been
disturbed by Rollin's sudden appearance.
They walked along in silence a little way. The avenue was full of people. Among
the persons passing was Jasper Chase. He saw Rachel and Rollin and bowed as they
went by. Rollin was watching Rachel closely.
"I wish I was Jasper Chase. Maybe I would stand some chance then," he
said moodily.
Rachel colored in spite of herself. She did not say anything and quickened her
pace a little. Rollin seemed determined to say something, and Rachel seemed
helpless to prevent him. After all, she thought, he might as well know the truth
one time as another.
"You know well enough, Rachel, how I feel toward you. Isn't there any hope?
I could make you happy. I've loved you a good many years--"
"Why, how old do you think I am?" broke in Rachel with a nervous
laugh. She was shaken out of her usual poise of manner.
"You know what I mean," went on Rollin doggedly. "And you have no
right to laugh at me just because I want you to marry me."
"I'm not! But it is useless for you to speak, Rollin," said Rachel
after a little hesitation, and then using his name in such a frank, simple way
that he could attach no meaning to it beyond the familiarity of the old family
acquaintance. "It is impossible." She was still a little agitated by
the fact of receiving a proposal of marriage on the avenue. But the noise on the
street and sidewalk made the conversation as private as if they were in the
house.
"Would that is--do you think--if you gave me time I would "
"No!" said Rachel. She spoke firmly; perhaps, she thought afterward,
although she did not mean to, she spoke harshly.
They walked on for some time without a word. They were nearing Rachel's home and
she was anxious to end the scene.
As they turned off the avenue into one of the quieter streets Rollin spoke
suddenly and with more manliness than he had yet shown. There was a distinct
note of dignity in his voice that was new to Rachel.
"Miss Winslow, I ask you to be my wife. Is there any hope for me that you
will ever consent?"
"None in the least." Rachel spoke decidedly.
"Will you tell me why?" He asked the question as if he had a right to
a truthful answer.
"Because I do not feel toward you as a woman ought to feel toward the man
she marries."
"In other words, you do not love me?"
"I do not and I cannot."
"Why?" That was another question, and Rachel was a little surprised
that he should ask it.
"Because--" she hesitated for fear she might say too much in an
attempt to speak the exact truth.
"Tell me just why. You can't hurt me more than you have already."
"Well, I do not and I cannot love you because you have no purpose in life.
What do you ever do to make the world better? You spend your time in club life,
in amusements, in travel, in luxury. What is there in such a life to attract a
woman?"
"Not much, I guess," said Rollin with a bitter laugh. "Still, I
don't know that I'm any worse than the rest of the men around me. I'm not so bad
as some. I'm glad to know your reasons."
He suddenly stopped, took off his hat, bowed gravely and turned back. Rachel
went on home and hurried into her room, disturbed in many ways by the event
which had so unexpectedly thrust itself into her experience.
When she had time to think it all over she found herself condemned by the very
judgment she had passed on Rollin Page. What purpose had she in life? She had
been abroad and studied music with one of the famous teachers of Europe. She had
come home to Raymond and had been singing in the First Church choir now for a
year. She was well paid. Up to that Sunday two weeks ago she had been quite
satisfied with herself and with her position. She had shared her mother's
ambition, and anticipated growing triumphs in the musical world. What possible
career was before her except the regular career of every singer?
She asked the question again and, in the light of her recent reply to Rollin,
asked again, if she had any very great purpose in life herself. What would Jesus
do? There was a fortune in her voice. She knew it, not necessarily as a matter
of personal pride or professional egotism, but simply as a fact. And she was
obliged to acknowledge that until two weeks ago she had purposed to use her
voice to make money and win admiration and applause. Was that a much higher
purpose, after all, than Rollin Page lived for?
She sat in her room a long time and finally went downstairs, resolved to have a
frank talk with her mother about the concert company's offer and the new plan
which was gradually shaping in her mind. She had already had one talk with her
mother and knew that she expected Rachel to accept the offer and enter on a
successful career as a public singer.
"Mother," Rachel said, coming at once to the point, much as she
dreaded the interview, "I have decided not to go out with the company. I
have a good reason for it."
Mrs. Winslow was a large, handsome woman, fond of much company, ambitious for
distinction in society and devoted, according to her definitions of success, to
the success of her children. Her youngest boy, Louis, two years younger than
Rachel, was ready to graduate from a military academy in the summer. Meanwhile
she and Rachel were at home together. Rachel's father, like Virginia's, had died
while the family was abroad. Like Virginia she found herself, under her present
rule of conduct, in complete antagonism with her own immediate home circle. Mrs.
Winslow waited for Rachel to go on.
"You know the promise I made two weeks ago, mother?"
"Mr. Maxwell's promise?"
"No, mine. You know what it was, do you not, mother?"
"I suppose I do. Of course all the church members mean to imitate Christ
and follow Him, as far as is consistent with our present day surroundings. But
what has that to do with your decision in the concert company matter?"
"It has everything to do with it. After asking, 'What would Jesus do?' and
going to the source of authority for wisdom, I have been obliged to say that I
do not believe He would, in my case, make that use of my voice."
"Why? Is there anything wrong about such a career ? "
"No, I don't know that I can say there is."
"Do you presume to sit in judgment on other people who go out to sing in
this way? Do you presume to say they are doing what Christ would not do?"
"Mother, I wish you to understand me. I judge no one else; I condemn no
other professional singer. I simply decide my own course. As I look at it, I
have a conviction that Jesus would do something else."
"What else?" Mrs. Winslow had not yet lost her temper. She did not
understand the situation nor Rachel in the midst of it, but she was anxious that
her daughter's course should be as distinguished as her natural gifts promised.
And she felt confident that when the present unusual religious excitement in the
First Church had passed away Rachel would go on with her public life according
to the wishes of the family. She was totally unprepared for Rachel's next
remark.
"What? Something that will serve mankind where it most needs the service of
song. Mother, I have made up my mind to use my voice in some way so as to
satisfy my own soul that I am doing something better than pleasing fashionable
audiences, or making money, or even gratifying my own love of singing. I am
going to do something that will satisfy me when I ask: 'What would Jesus do?' I
am not satisfied, and cannot be, when I think of myself as singing myself into
the career of a concert company performer."
Rachel spoke with a vigor and earnestness that surprised her mother. But Mrs.
Winslow was angry now; and she never tried to conceal her feelings.
"It is simply absurd! Rachel, you are a fanatic! What can you do?"
"The world has been served by men and women who have given it other things
that were gifts. Why should I, because I am blessed with a natural gift, at once
proceed to put a market price on it and make all the money I can out of it? You
know, mother, that you have taught me to think of a musical career always in the
light of financial and social success. I have been unable, since I made my
promise two weeks ago, to imagine Jesus joining a concert company to do what I
should do and live the life I should have to live if I joined it."
Mrs. Winslow rose and then sat down again. With a great effort she composed
herself.
"What do you intend to do then? You have not answered my question."
"I shall continue to sing for the time being in the church. I am pledged to
sing there through the spring. During the week I am going to sing at the White
Cross meetings, down in the Rectangle."
"What! Rachel Winslow! Do you know what you are saying? Do you know what
sort of people those are down there?"
Rachel almost quailed before her mother. For a moment she shrank back and was
silent. Then she spoke firmly: "I know very well. That is the reason I am
going. Mr. and Mrs. Gray have been working there several weeks. I learned only
this morning that they want singers from the churches to help them in their
meetings. They use a tent. It is in a part of the city where Christian work is
most needed. I shall offer them my help. Mother!" Rachel cried out with the
first passionate utterance she had yet used, "I want to do something that
will cost me something in the way of sacrifice. I know you will not understand
me. But I am hungry to suffer for something. What have we done all our lives for
the suffering, sinning side of Raymond? How much have we denied ourselves or
given of our personal ease and pleasure to bless the place in which we live or
imitate the life of the Savior of the world? Are we always to go on doing as
society selfishly dictates, moving on its little narrow round of pleasures and
entertainments, and never knowing the pain of things that cost?"
"Are you preaching at me?" asked Mrs. Winslow slowly. Rachel rose, and
understood her mother's words.
"No. I am preaching at myself," she replied gently. She paused a
moment as if she thought her mother would say something more, and then went out
of the room. When she reached her own room she felt that so far as her own
mother was concerned she could expect no sympathy, nor even a fair understanding
from her.
She kneeled. It is safe to say that within the two weeks since Henry Maxwell's
church had faced that shabby figure with the faded hat more members of his
parish had been driven to their knees in prayer than during all the previous
term of his pastorate.
She rose, and her face was wet with tears. She sat thoughtfully a little while
and then wrote a note to Virginia Page. She sent it to her by a messenger and
then went downstairs and told her mother that she and Virginia were going down
to the Rectangle that evening to see Mr. and Mrs. Gray, the evangelists.
"Virginia's uncle, Dr. West, will go with us, if she goes. I have asked her
to call him up by telephone and go with us. The Doctor is a friend of the Grays,
and attended some of their meetings last winter."
Mrs. Winslow did not say anything. Her manner showed her complete disapproval of
Rachel's course, and Rachel felt her unspoken bitterness.
About seven o'clock the Doctor and Virginia appeared, and together the three
started for the scene of the White Cross meetings.
The Rectangle was the most notorious district in Raymond. It was on the
territory close by the railroad shops and the packing houses. The great slum and
tenement district of Raymond congested its worst and most wretched elements
about the Rectangle. This was a barren field used in the summer by circus
companies and wandering showmen. It was shut in by rows of saloons, gambling
hells and cheap, dirty boarding and lodging houses.
The First Church of Raymond had never touched the Rectangle problem. It was too
dirty, too coarse, too sinful, too awful for close contact. Let us be honest.
There had been an attempt to cleanse this sore spot by sending down an
occasional committee of singers or Sunday-school teachers or gospel visitors
from various churches. But the First Church of Raymond, as an institution, had
never really done anything to make the Rectangle any less a stronghold of the
devil as the years went by.
Into this heart of the coarse part of the sin of Raymond the traveling
evangelist and his brave little wife had pitched a good-sized tent and begun
meetings. It was the spring of the year and the evenings were beginning to be
pleasant. The evangelists had asked for the help of Christian people, and had
received more than the usual amount of encouragement. But they felt a great need
of more and better music. During the meetings on the Sunday just gone the
assistant at the organ had been taken ill. The volunteers from the city were few
and the voices were of ordinary quality.
"There will be a small meeting tonight, John," said his wife, as they
entered the tent a little after seven o'clock and began to arrange the chairs
and light up.
"Yes, I fear so." Mr. Gray was a small, energetic man, with a pleasant
voice and the courage of a high-born fighter. He had already made friends in the
neighborhood and one of his converts, a heavy-faced man who had just come in,
began to help in the arranging of seats.
It was after eight o'clock when Alexander Powers opened the door of his office
and started for home. He was going to take a car at the corner of the Rectangle.
But he was roused by a voice coming from the tent.
It was the voice of Rachel Winslow. It struck through his consciousness of
struggle over his own question that had sent him into the Divine Presence for an
answer. He had not yet reached a conclusion. He was tortured with uncertainty.
His whole previous course of action as a railroad man was the poorest possible
preparation for anything sacrificial. And he could not yet say what he would do
in the matter.
Hark! What was she singing? How did Rachel Winslow happen to be down here?
Several windows near by went up. Some men quarreling near a saloon stopped and
listened. Other figures were walking rapidly in the direction of the Rectangle
and the tent. Surely Rachel Winslow had never sung like that in the First
Church. It was a marvelous voice. What was it she was singing? Again Alexander
Powers, Superintendent of the machine shops, paused and listened,
"Where He leads me I will follow,
Where He leads me I will follow,
Where He leads me I will follow,
I'll go with Him, with Him.
All the way!"
The brutal, coarse, impure life of the Rectangle stirred itself into new life as
the song, as pure as the surroundings were vile, floated out and into saloon and
den and foul lodging. Some one stumbled hastily by Alexander Powers and said in
answer to a question: "De tent's beginning to run over tonight. That's what
the talent calls music, eh?"
The Superintendent turned toward the tent. Then he stopped. After a minute of
indecision he went on to the corner and took the car for his home. But before he
was out of the sound of Rachel's voice he knew he had settled for himself the
question of what Jesus would do.
Chapter Eight
"If any man would come after me, let him deny himself and take up his cross
daily and follow me."
HENRY MAXWELL paced his study back and forth. It was Wednesday and he had
started to think out the subject of his evening service which fell upon that
night. Out of one of his study windows he could see the tall chimney of the
railroad shops. The top of the evangelist's tent just showed over the buildings
around the Rectangle. He looked out of his window every time he turned in his
walk. After a while he sat down at his desk and drew a large piece of paper
toward him. After thinking several moments he wrote in large letters the
following:
A NUMBER OF THINGS THAT JESUS WOULD
PROBABLY DO IN THIS PARISH
1.Live in a simple, plain manner, without needless luxury on the one hand or
undue asceticism on the other.
2.Preach fearlessly to the hypocrites in the church, no matter what their social
importance or wealth. 3.Show in some practical form His sympathy and love for
the common people as well as for the well-to-do, educated, refined people who
make up the majority of the parish. 4.Identify Himself with the great causes of
humanity in some personal way that would call for self-denial and suffering.
5.Preach against the saloon in Raymond.
6.Become known as a friend and companion of the sinful people in the Rectangle.
7.Give up the summer trip to Europe this year. (I have been abroad twice and
cannot claim any special need of rest. I am well, and could forego this
pleasure, using the money for some one who needs a vacation more than I do.
There are probably plenty of such people in the city.)
He was conscious, with a humility that was once a stranger to him, that his
outline of Jesus' probable action was painfully lacking in depth and power, but
he was seeking carefully for concrete shapes into which he might cast his
thought of Jesus' conduct. Nearly every point he had put down, meant, for him, a
complete overturning of the custom and habit of years in the ministry. In spite
of that, he still searched deeper for sources of the Christ-like spirit. He did
not attempt to write any more, but sat at his desk absorbed in his effort to
catch more and more the spirit of Jesus in his own life. He had forgotten the
particular subject for his prayer meeting with which he had begun his morning
study.
He was so absorbed over his thought that he did not hear the bell ring; he was
roused by the servant who announced a caller. He had sent up his name, Mr. Gray.
Maxwell stepped to the head of the stairs and asked Gray to come up. So Gray
came up and stated the reason for his call.
"I want your help, Mr. Maxwell. Of course you have heard what a wonderful
meeting we had Monday night and last night. Miss Winslow has done more with her
voice than I could do, and the tent won't hold the people."
"I've heard of that. It is the first time the people there have heard her.
It is no wonder they are attracted."
"It has been a wonderful revelation to us, and a most encouraging event in
our work. But I came to ask if you could not come down tonight and preach. I am
suffering from a severe cold. I do not dare trust my voice again. I know it is
asking a good deal from such a busy man. But, if you can't come, say so frankly,
and I'll try somewhere else."
"I'm sorry, but it's my regular prayer meeting night," began Henry
Maxwell. Then he flushed and added, "I shall be able to arrange it in some
way so as to come down. You can count on me."
Gray thanked him earnestly and rose to go.
"Won't you stay a minute, Gray, and let us have a prayer together?"
"Yes," said Gray simply.
So the two men kneeled together in the study. Henry Maxwell prayed like a child.
Gray was touched to tears as he knelt there. There was something almost pitiful
in the way this man who had lived his ministerial life in such a narrow limit of
exercise now begged for wisdom and strength to speak a message to the people in
the Rectangle.
Gray rose and held out his hand. "God bless you, Mr. Maxwell. I'm sure the
Spirit will give you power tonight."
Henry Maxwell made no answer. He did not even trust himself to say that he hoped
so. But he thought of his promise and it brought him a certain peace that was
refreshing to his heart and mind alike.
So that is how it came about that when the First Church audience came into the
lecture room that evening it met with another surprise. There was an unusually
large number present. The prayer meetings ever since that remarkable Sunday
morning had been attended as never before in the history of the First Church.
Mr. Maxwell came at once to the point.
"I feel that I am called to go down to the Rectangle tonight, and I will
leave it with you to say whether you will go on with this meeting here. I think
perhaps the best plan would be for a few volunteers to go down to the Rectangle
with me prepared to help in the after-meeting, if necessary, and the rest to
remain here and pray that the Spirit power may go with us."
So half a dozen of the men went with the pastor, and the rest of the audience
stayed in the lecture room. Maxwell could not escape the thought as he left the
room that probably in his entire church membership there might not be found a
score of disciples who were capable of doing work that would successfully lead
needy, sinful men into the knowledge of Christ. The thought did not linger in
his mind to vex him as he went his way, but it was simply a part of his whole
new conception of the meaning of Christian discipleship.
When he and his little company of volunteers reached the Rectangle, the tent was
already crowded. They had difficulty in getting to the platform. Rachel was
there with Virginia and Jasper Chase who had come instead of the Doctor tonight.
When the meeting began with a song in which Rachel sang the solo and the people
were asked to join in the chorus, not a foot of standing room was left in the
tent. The night was mild and the sides of the tent were up and a great border of
faces stretched around, looking in and forming part of the audience. After the
singing, and a prayer by one of the city pastors who was present, Gray stated
the reason for his inability to speak, and in his simple manner turned the
service over to "Brother Maxwell of the First Church."
"Who's de bloke?" asked a hoarse voice near the outside of the tent.
"De Fust Church parson. We've got de whole high-tone swell outfit
tonight."
"Did you say Fust Church? I know him. My landlord's got a front pew up
there," said another voice, and there was a laugh, for the speaker was a
saloon keeper.
"Trow out de life line 'cross de dark wave!" began a drunken man near
by, singing in such an unconscious imitation of a local traveling singer's nasal
tone that roars of laughter and jeers of approval rose around him. The people in
the tent turned in the direction of the disturbance. There were shouts of
"Put him out!" "Give the Fust Church a chance!" "Song!
Song! Give us another song!"
Henry Maxwell stood up, and a great wave of actual terror went over him. This
was not like preaching to the well- dressed, respectable, good-mannered people
up on the boulevard. He began to speak, but the confusion increased. Gray went
down into the crowd, but did not seem able to quiet it. Maxwell raised his arm
and his voice. The crowd in the tent began to pay some attention, but the noise
on the outside increased. In a few minutes the audience was beyond his control.
He turned to Rachel with a sad smile.
"Sing something, Miss Winslow. They will listen to you," he said, and
then sat down and covered his face with his hands.
It was Rachel's opportunity, and she was fully equal to it. Virginia was at the
organ and Rachel asked her to play a few notes of the hymn.
"Savior, I follow on,
Guided by Thee,
Seeing not yet the hand
That leadeth me.
Hushed be my heart and still
Fear I no farther ill,
Only to meet Thy will,
My will shall be."
Rachel had not sung the first line before the people in the tent were all turned
toward her, hushed and reverent. Before she had finished the verse the Rectangle
was subdued and tamed. It lay like some wild beast at her feet, and she sang it
into harmlessness. Ah! What were the flippant, perfumed, critical audiences in
concert halls compared with this dirty, drunken, impure, besotted mass of
humanity that trembled and wept and grew strangely, sadly thoughtful under the
touch of this divine ministry of this beautiful young woman! Mr. Maxwell, as he
raised his head and saw the transformed mob, had a glimpse of something that
Jesus would probably do with a voice like Rachel Winslow's. Jasper Chase sat
with his eyes on the singer, and his greatest longing as an ambitious author was
swallowed up in his thought of what Rachel Winslow's love might sometimes mean
to him. And over in the shadow outside stood the last person any one might have
expected to see at a gospel tent service -- Rollin Page, who, jostled on every
side by rough men and women who stared at the swell in fine clothes, seemed
careless of his surroundings and at the same time evidently swayed by the power
that Rachel possessed. He had just come over from the club. Neither Rachel nor
Virginia saw him that night.
The song was over. Maxwell rose again. This time he felt calmer. What would
Jesus do? He spoke as he thought once he never could speak. Who were these
people? They were immortal souls. What was Christianity? A calling of sinners,
not the righteous, to repentance. How would Jesus speak? What would He say? He
could not tell all that His message would include, but he felt sure of a part of
it. And in that certainty he spoke on. Never before had he felt "compassion
for the multitude." What had the multitude been to him during his ten years
in the First Church but a vague, dangerous, dirty, troublesome factor in
society, outside of the church and of his reach, an element that caused him
occasionally an unpleasant twinge of conscience, a factor in Raymond that was
talked about at associations as the "masses," in papers written by the
brethren in attempts to show why the "masses" were not being reached.
But tonight as he faced the masses he asked himself whether, after all, this was
not just about such a multitude as Jesus faced oftenest, and he felt the genuine
emotion of love for a crowd which is one of the best indications a preacher ever
has that he is living close to the heart of the world's eternal Life. It is easy
to love an individual sinner, especially if he is personally picturesque or
interesting. To love a multitude of sinners is distinctively a Christ-like
quality.
When the meeting closed, there was no special interest shown. No one stayed to
the after-meeting. The people rapidly melted away from the tent, and the
saloons, which had been experiencing a dull season while the meetings
progressed, again drove a thriving trade. The Rectangle, as if to make up for
lost time, started in with vigor on its usual night debauch. Maxwell and his
little party, including Virginia, Rachel and Jasper Chase, walked down past the
row of saloons and dens until they reached the corner where the cars passed.
"This is a terrible spot," said the minister as he stood waiting for
their car. "I never realized that Raymond had such a festering sore. It
does not seem possible that this is a city full of Christian disciples."
"Do you think any one can ever remove this great curse of drink?"
asked Jasper Chase.
"I have thought lately as never before of what Christian people might do to
remove the curse of the saloon. Why don't we all act together against it? Why
don't the Christian pastors and the church members of Raymond move as one man
against the traffic? What would Jesus do? Would He keep silent? Would He vote to
license these causes of crime and death?"
He was talking to himself more than to the others. He remembered that he had
always voted for license, and so had nearly all his church members. What would
Jesus do? Could he answer that question? Would the Master preach and act against
the saloon if He lived today? How would He preach and act? Suppose it was not
popular to preach against license? Suppose the Christian people thought it was
all that could be done to license the evil and so get revenue from the necessary
sin? Or suppose the church members themselves owned the property where the
saloons stood--what then? He knew that those were the facts in Raymond. What
would Jesus do?
He went up into his study the next morning with that question only partly
answered. He thought of it all day. He was still thinking of it and reaching
certain real conclusions when the EVENING NEWS came. His wife brought it up and
sat down a few minutes while he read to her.
The EVENING NEWS was at present the most sensational paper in Raymond. That is
to say, it was being edited in such a remarkable fashion that its subscribers
had never been so excited over a newspaper before. First they had noticed the
absence of the prize fight, and gradually it began to dawn upon them that the
NEWS no longer printed accounts of crime with detailed descriptions, or scandals
in private life. Then they noticed that the advertisements of liquor and tobacco
were dropped, together with certain others of a questionable character. The
discontinuance of the Sunday paper caused the greatest comment of all, and now
the character of the editorials was creating the greatest excitement. A
quotation from the Monday paper of this week will show what Edward Norman was
doing to keep his promise. The editorial was headed:
THE MORAL SIDE OF POLITICAL
QUESTIONS
The editor of the News has always advocated the principles of the great
political party at present in power, and has heretofore discussed all political
questions from the standpoint of expediency, or of belief in the party as
opposed to other political organizations. Hereafter, to be perfectly honest with
all our readers, the editor will present and discuss all political questions
from the standpoint of right and wrong. In other words, the first question asked
in this office about any political question will not be, "Is it in the
interests of our party?" or, "Is it according to the principles laid
down by our party in its platform?" but the question first asked will be,
"Is this measure in accordance with the spirit and teachings of Jesus as
the author of the greatest standard of life known to men?" That is, to be
perfectly plain, the moral side of every political question will be considered
its most important side, and the ground will be distinctly taken that nations as
well as individuals are under the same law to do all things to the glory of God
as the first rule of action.
The same principle will be observed in this office toward candidates for places
of responsibility and trust in the republic. Regardless of party politics the
editor of the News will do all in his power to bring the best men into power,
and will not knowingly help to support for office any candidate who is unworthy,
no matter how much he may be endorsed by the party. The first question asked
about the man and about the measures will be, "Is he the right man for the
place?" "Is he a good man with ability?" "Is the measure
right?"
There had been more of this, but we have quoted enough to show the character of
the editorial. Hundreds of men in Raymond had read it and rubbed their eyes in
amazement. A good many of them had promptly written to the NEWS, telling the
editor to stop their paper. The paper still came out, however, and was eagerly
read all over the city. At the end of a week Edward Norman knew very well that
he was fast losing a large number of subscribers. He faced the conditions
calmly, although Clark, the managing editor, grimly anticipated ultimate
bankruptcy, especially since Monday's editorial.
Tonight, as Maxwell read to his wife, he could see in almost every column
evidences of Norman's conscientious obedience to his promise. There was an
absence of slangy, sensational scare heads. The reading matter under the head
lines was in perfect keeping with them. He noticed in two columns that the
reporters' name appeared signed at the bottom. And there was a distinct advance
in the dignity and style of their contributions.
"So Norman is beginning to get his reporters to sign their work. He has
talked with me about that. It is a good thing. It fixes responsibility for items
where it belongs and raises the standard of work done. A good thing all around
for the public and the writers."
Maxwell suddenly paused. His wife looked up from some work she was doing. He was
reading something with the utmost interest. "Listen to this, Mary," he
said, after a moment while his lip trembled:
This morning Alexander Powers, Superintendent of the L. and T. R. R. shops in
this city, handed in his resignation to the road, and gave as his reason the
fact that certain proofs had fallen into his hands of the violation of the
Interstate Commerce Law, and also of the state law which has recently been
framed to prevent and punish railroad pooling for the benefit of certain favored
shippers. Mr. Powers states in his resignation that he can no longer
consistently withhold the information he possesses against the road. He will be
a witness against it. He has placed his evidence against the company in the
hands of the Commission and it is now for them to take action upon it.
The News wishes to express itself on this action of Mr. Powers. In the first
place he has nothing to gain by it. He has lost a very valuable place
voluntarily, when by keeping silent he might have retained it. In the second
place, we believe his action ought to receive the approval of all thoughtful,
honest citizens who believe in seeing law obeyed and lawbreakers brought to
justice. In a case like this, where evidence against a railroad company is
generally understood to be almost impossible to obtain, it is the general belief
that the officers of the road are often in possession of criminating facts but
do not consider it to be any of their business to inform the authorities that
the law is being defied. The entire result of this evasion of responsibility on
the part of those who are responsible is demoralizing to every young man
connected with the road. The editor of the News recalls the statement made by a
prominent railroad official in this city a little while ago, that nearly every
clerk in a certain department of the road understood that large sums of money
were made by shrewd violations of the Interstate Commerce Law, was ready to
admire the shrewdness with which it was done, and declared that they would all
do the same thing if they were high enough in railroad circles to attempt it.*
It is not necessary to say that such a condition of business is destructive to
all the nobler and higher standards of conduct, and no young man can live in
such an atmosphere of unpunished dishonesty and lawlessness without wrecking his
character.
In our judgment, Mr. Powers did the only thing that a Christian man could do. He
has rendered brave and useful service to the state and the general public. It is
not always an easy matter to determine the relations that exist between the
individual citizen and his fixed duty to the public. In this case there is no
doubt in our minds that the step which Mr. Powers has taken commends itself to
every man who believes in law and its enforcement. There are times when the
individual must act for the people in ways that will mean sacrifice and loss to
him of the gravest character. Mr. Powers will be misunderstood and
misrepresented, but there is no question that his course will be approved by
every citizen who wishes to see the greatest corporation as well as the weakest
individual subject to the same law. Mr. Powers has done all that a loyal,
patriotic citizen could do. It now remains for the Commission to act upon his
evidence which, we understand, is overwhelming proof of the lawlessness of the
L. and T. Let the law be enforced, no matter who the persons may be who have
been guilty.
* This was actually said in one of the General Offices of a great Western
railroad, to the author's knowledge.
Chapter Nine
HENRY MAXWELL finished reading and dropped the paper.
"I must go and see Powers. This is the result of his promise."
He rose, and as he was going out, his wife said: "Do you think, Henry, that
Jesus would have done that?"
Maxwell paused a moment. Then he answered slowly, "Yes, I think He would.
At any rate, Powers has decided so and each one of us who made the promise
understands that he is not deciding Jesus' conduct for any one else, only for
himself."
"How about his family? How will Mrs. Powers and Celia be likely to take
it?"
"Very hard, I've no doubt. That will be Powers' cross in this matter. They
will not understand his motive."
Maxwell went out and walked over to the next block where Superintendent Powers
lived. To his relief, Powers himself came to the door.
The two men shook hands silently. They instantly understood each other without
words. There had never before been such a bond of union between the minister and
his parishioner.
"What are you going to do?" Henry Maxwell asked after they had talked
over the facts in the case.
"You mean another position? I have no plans yet. I can go back to my old
work as a telegraph operator. My family will not suffer, except in a social
way."
Powers spoke calmly and sadly. Henry Maxwell did not need to ask him how the
wife and daughter felt. He knew well enough that the superintendent had suffered
deepest at that point.
"There is one matter I wish you would see to," said Powers after
awhile, "and that is, the work begun at the shops. So far as I know, the
company will not object to that going on. It is one of the contradictions of the
railroad world that Y. M. C. A.'s and other Christian influences are encouraged
by the roads, while all the time the most un-Christian and lawless acts may be
committed in the official management of the roads themselves. Of course it is
well understood that it pays a railroad to have in its employ men who are
temperate, honest and Christian. So I have no doubt the master mechanic will
have the same courtesy shown him in the use of the room. But what I want you to
do, Mr. Maxwell, is to see that my plan is carried out. Will you? You understand
what it was in general. You made a very favorable impression on the men. Go down
there as often as you can. Get Milton Wright interested to provide something for
the furnishing and expense of the coffee plant and reading tables. Will you do
it?"
"Yes," replied Henry Maxwell. He stayed a little longer. Before he
went away, he and the superintendent had a prayer together, and they parted with
that silent hand grasp that seemed to them like a new token of their Christian
discipleship and fellowship.
The pastor of the First Church went home stirred deeply by the events of the
week. Gradually the truth was growing upon him that the pledge to do as Jesus
would was working out a revolution in his parish and throughout the city. Every
day added to the serious results of obedience to that pledge. Maxwell did not
pretend to see the end. He was, in fact, only now at the very beginning of
events that were destined to change the history of hundreds of families not only
in Raymond but throughout the entire country. As he thought of Edward Norman and
Rachel and Mr. Powers, and of the results that had already come from their
actions, he could not help a feeling of intense interest in the probable effect
if all the persons in the First Church who had made the pledge, faithfully kept
it. Would they all keep it, or would some of them turn back when the cross
became too heavy?
He was asking this question the next morning as he sat in his study when the
President of the Endeavor Society of his church called to see him.
"I suppose I ought not to trouble you with my case," said young Morris
coming at once to his errand, "but I thought, Mr. Maxwell, that you might
advise me a little."
"I'm glad you came. Go on, Fred." He had known the young man ever
since his first year in the pastorate, and loved and honored him for his
consistent, faithful service in the church.
"Well, the fact is, I am out of a job. You know I've been doing reporter
work on the morning SENTINEL since I graduated last year. Well, last Saturday
Mr. Burr asked me to go down the road Sunday morning and get the details of that
train robbery at the Junction, and write the thing up for the extra edition that
came out Monday morning, just to get the start of the NEWS. I refused to go, and
Burr gave me my dismissal. He was in a bad temper, or I think perhaps he would
not have done it. He has always treated me well before. Now, do you think Jesus
would have done as I did? I ask because the other fellows say I was a fool not
to do the work. I want to feel that a Christian acts from motives that may seem
strange to others sometimes, but not foolish. What do you think?"
"I think you kept your promise, Fred. I cannot believe Jesus would do
newspaper reporting on Sunday as you were asked to do it."
"Thank you, Mr. Maxwell. I felt a little troubled over it, but the longer I
think it over the better I feel."
Morris rose to go, and his pastor rose and laid a loving hand on the young man's
shoulder. "What are you going to do, Fred?"
"I don't know yet. I have thought some of going to Chicago or some large
city ."
"Why don't you try the NEWS?"
"They are all supplied. I have not thought of applying there."
Maxwell thought a moment. "Come down to the NEWS office with me, and let us
see Norman about it."
So a few minutes later Edward Norman received into his room the minister and
young Morris, and Maxwell briefly told the cause of the errand.
"I can give you a place on the NEWS," said Norman with his keen look
softened by a smile that made it winsome. "I want reporters who won't work
Sundays. And what is more, I am making plans for a special kind of reporting
which I believe you can develop because you are in sympathy with what Jesus
would do."
He assigned Morris a definite task, and Maxwell started back to his study,
feeling that kind of satisfaction (and it is a very deep kind) which a man feels
when he has been even partly instrumental in finding an unemployed person a
remunerative position.
He had intended to go right to his study, but on his way home he passed by one
of Milton Wright's stores. He thought he would simply step in and shake hands
with his parishioner and bid him God-speed in what he had heard he was doing to
put Christ into his business. But when he went into the office, Wright insisted
on detaining him to talk over some of his new plans. Maxwell asked himself if
this was the Milton Wright he used to know, eminently practical, business-like,
according to the regular code of the business world, and viewing every thing
first and foremost from the standpoint of, "Will it pay?"
"There is no use to disguise the fact, Mr. Maxwell, that I have been
compelled to revolutionize the entire method of my business since I made that
promise. I have been doing a great many things during the last twenty years in
this store that I know Jesus would not do. But that is a small item compared
with the number of things I begin to believe Jesus would do. My sins of
commission have not been as many as those of omission in business
relations."
"What was the first change you made?" He felt as if his sermon could
wait for him in his study. As the interview with Milton Wright continued, he was
not so sure but that he had found material for a sermon without going back to
his study.
"I think the first change I had to make was in my thought of my employees.
I came down here Monday morning after that Sunday and asked myself, 'What would
Jesus do in His relation to these clerks, bookkeepers, office-boys, draymen,
salesmen? Would He try to establish some sort of personal relation to them
different from that which I have sustained all these years?' I soon answered
this by saying, 'Yes.' Then came the question of what that relation would be and
what it would lead me to do. I did not see how I could answer it to my
satisfaction without getting all my employees together and having a talk with
them. So I sent invitations to all of them, and we had a meeting out there in
the warehouse Tuesday night. A good many things came out of that meeting. I
can't tell you all. I tried to talk with the men as I imagined Jesus might. It
was hard work, for I have not been in the habit of it, and must have made some
mistakes. But I can hardly make you believe, Mr. Maxwell, the effect of that
meeting on some of the men. Before it closed I saw more than a dozen of them
with tears on their faces. I kept asking, 'What would Jesus do?' and the more I
asked it the farther along it pushed me into the most intimate and loving
relations with the men who have worked for me all these years. Every day
something new is coming up and I am right now in the midst of a reconstruction
of the entire business so far as its motive for being conducted is concerned. I
am so practically ignorant of all plans for co-operation and its application to
business that I am trying to get information from every possible source. I have
lately made a special study of the life of Titus Salt, the great mill-owner of
Bradford, England, who afterward built that model town on the banks of the Aire.
There is a good deal in his plans that will help me. But I have not yet reached
definite conclusions in regard to all the details. I am not enough used to
Jesus' methods. But see here."
Wright eagerly reached up into one of the pigeon holes of his desk and took out
a paper.
"I have sketched out what seems to me like a program such as Jesus might go
by in a business like mine. I want you to tell me what you think of it:
"WHAT JESUS WOULD PROBABLY DO IN
MILTON WRIGHT'S PLACE AS A
BUSINESS MAN"
1.He would engage in the, business first of all for the purpose of glorifying
God, and not for the primary purpose of making money.
2.All money that might be made he would never regard as his own, but as trust
funds to be used for the good of humanity.
3.His relations with all the persons in his employ would be the most loving and
helpful. He could not help thinking of all of them in the light of souls to be
saved. This thought would always be greater than his thought of making money in
the business. 4.He would never do a single dishonest or questionable thing or
try in any remotest way to get the advantage of any one else in the same
business. 5.The principle of unselfishness and helpfulness in the business would
direct all its details. 6.Upon this principle he would shape the entire plan of
his relations to his employees, to the people who were his customers and to the
general business world with which he was connected.
Henry Maxwell read this over slowly. It reminded him of his own attempts the day
before to put into a concrete form his thought of Jesus' probable action. He was
very thoughtful as he looked up and met Wright's eager gaze.
"Do you believe you can continue to make your business pay on these
lines?"
"I do. Intelligent unselfishness ought to be wiser than intelligent
selfishness, don't you think? If the men who work as employees begin to feel a
personal share in the profits of the business and, more than that, a personal
love for themselves on the part of the firm, won't the result be more care, less
waste, more diligence, more faithfulness?"
"Yes, I think so. A good many other business men don't, do they? I mean as
a general thing. How about your relations to the selfish world that is not
trying to make money on Christian principles?"
"That complicates my action, of course."
"Does your plan contemplate what is coming to be known as
co-operation?"
"Yes, as far as I have gone, it does. As I told you, I am studying out my
details carefully. I am absolutely convinced that Jesus in my place would be
absolutely unselfish. He would love all these men in His employ. He would
consider the main purpose of all the business to be a mutual helpfulness, and
would conduct it all so that God's kingdom would be evidently the first object
sought. On those general principles, as I say, I am working. I must have time to
complete the details."
When Maxwell finally left he was profoundly impressed with the revolution that
was being wrought already in the business. As he passed out of the store he
caught something of the new spirit of the place. There was no mistaking the fact
that Milton Wright's new relations to his employees were beginning even so soon,
after less than two weeks, to transform the entire business. This was apparent
in the conduct and faces of the clerks.
"If he keeps on he will be one of the most influential preachers in
Raymond," said Maxwell to himself when he reached his study. The question
rose as to his continuance in this course when he began to lose money by it, as
was possible. He prayed that the Holy Spirit, who had shown Himself with growing
power in the company of First Church disciples, might abide long with them all.
And with that prayer on his lips and in his heart he began the preparation of a
sermon in which he was going to present to his people on Sunday the subject of
the saloon in Raymond, as he now believed Jesus would do. He had never preached
against the saloon in this way before. He knew that the things he should say
would lead to serious results. Nevertheless, he went on with his work, and every
sentence he wrote or shaped was preceded with the question, "Would Jesus
say that?" Once in the course of his study, he went down on his knees. No
one except himself could know what that meant to him. When had he done that in
his preparation of sermons, before the change that had come into his thought of
discipleship? As he viewed his ministry now, he did not dare preach without
praying long for wisdom. He no longer thought of his dramatic delivery and its
effect on his audience. The great question with him now was, "What would
Jesus do?"
Saturday night at the Rectangle witnessed some of the most remarkable scenes
that Mr. Gray and his wife had ever known. The meetings had intensified with
each night of Rachel's singing. A stranger passing through the Rectangle in the
day-time might have heard a good deal about the meetings in one way and another.
It cannot be said that up to that Saturday night there was any appreciable lack
of oaths and impurity and heavy drinking. The Rectangle would not have
acknowledged that it was growing any better or that even the singing had
softened its outward manner. It had too much local pride in being
"tough." But in spite of itself there was a yielding to a power it had
never measured and did not know we enough to resist beforehand.
Gray had recovered his voice so that by Saturday he was able to speak. The fact
that he was obliged to use his voice carefully made it necessary for the people
to be very quiet if they wanted to hear. Gradually they had come to understand
that this man was talking these many weeks and giving his time and strength to
give them a knowledge of a Savior, all out of a perfectly unselfish love for
them. Tonight the great crowd was as quiet as Henry Maxwell's decorous audience
ever was. The fringe around the tent was deeper and the saloons were practically
empty. The Holy Spirit had come at last, and Gray knew that one of the great
prayers of his life was going to be answered.
And Rachel her singing was the best, most wonderful, that Virginia or Jasper
Chase had ever known. They came together again tonight, this time with Dr. West,
who had spent all his spare time that week in the Rectangle with some charity
cases. Virginia was at the organ, Jasper sat on a front seat looking up at
Rachel, and the Rectangle swayed as one man towards the platform as she sang:
"Just as I am, without one plea,
But that Thy blood was shed for me,
And that Thou bidst me come to Thee,
O Lamb of God, I come, I come."
Gray hardly said a word. He stretched out his hand with a gesture of invitation.
And down the two aisles of the tent, broken, sinful creatures, men and women,
stumbled towards the platform. One woman out of the street was near the organ.
Virginia caught the look of her face, and for the first time in the life of the
rich girl the thought of what Jesus was to the sinful woman came with a
suddenness and power that was like nothing but a new birth. Virginia left the
organ, went to her, looked into her face and caught her hands in her own. The
other girl trembled, then fell on her knees sobbing, with her head down upon the
back of the rude bench in front of her, still clinging to Virginia. And
Virginia, after a moment's hesitation, kneeled down by her and the two heads
were bowed close together.
But when the people had crowded in a double row all about the platform, most of
them kneeling and crying, a man in evening dress, different from the others,
pushed through the seats and came and kneeled down by the side of the drunken
man who had disturbed the meeting when Maxwell spoke. He kneeled within a few
feet of Rachel Winslow, who was still singing softly. And as she turned for a
moment and looked in his direction, she was amazed to see the face of Rollin
Page! For a moment her voice faltered. Then she went on:
"Just as I am, thou wilt receive,
Wilt welcome, pardon, cleanse, relieve,
Because Thy promise I believe,
O Lamb of God, I come, I come."
The voice was as the voice of divine longing, and the Rectangle for the time
being was swept into the harbor of redemptive grace.
Chapter Ten
"If any man serve me, let him follow me."
IT was nearly midnight before the services at the Rectangle closed. Gray stayed
up long into Sunday morning, praying and talking with a little group of converts
who in the great experiences of their new life, clung to the evangelist with a
personal helplessness that made it as impossible for him to leave them as if
they had been depending upon him to save them from physical death. Among these
converts was Rollin Page.
Virginia and her uncle had gone home about eleven o'clock, and Rachel and Jasper
Chase had gone with them as far as the avenue where Virginia lived. Dr. West had
walked on a little way with them to his own home, and Rachel and Jasper had then
gone on together to her mother's.
That was a little after eleven. It was now striking midnight, and Jasper Chase
sat in his room staring at the papers on his desk and going over the last half
hour with painful persistence.
He had told Rachel Winslow of his love for her, and she had not given him her
love in return. It would be difficult to know what was most powerful in the
impulse that had moved him to speak to her tonight. He had yielded to his
feelings without any special thought of results to himself, because he had felt
so certain that Rachel would respond to his love. He tried to recall the
impression she made on him when he first spoke to her.
Never had her beauty and her strength influenced him as tonight. While she was
singing he saw and heard no one else. The tent swarmed with a confused crowd of
faces and he knew he was sitting there hemmed in by a mob of people, but they
had no meaning to him. He felt powerless to avoid speaking to her. He knew he
should speak when they were alone.
Now that he had spoken, he felt that he had misjudged either Rachel or the
opportunity. He knew, or thought he knew, that she had begun to care something
for him. It was no secret between them that the heroine of Jasper's first novel
had been his own ideal of Rachel, and the hero in the story was himself and they
had loved each other in the book, and Rachel had not objected. No one else knew.
The names and characters had been drawn with a subtle skill that revealed to
Rachel, when she received a copy of the book from Jasper, the fact of his love
for her, and she had not been offended. That was nearly a year ago.
Tonight he recalled the scene between them with every inflection and movement
unerased from his memory. He even recalled the fact that he began to speak just
at that point on the avenue where, a few days before, he had met Rachel walking
with Rollin Page. He had wondered at the time what Rollin was saying.
"Rachel," Jasper had said, and it was the first time he had ever
spoken her first name, "I never knew till tonight how much I loved you. Why
should I try to conceal any longer what you have seen me look? You know I love
you as my life. I can no longer hide it from you if I would."
The first intimation he had of a repulse was the trembling of Rachel's arm in
his. She had allowed him to speak and had neither turned her face toward him nor
away from him. She had looked straight on and her voice was sad but firm and
quiet when she spoke.
"Why do you speak to me now? I cannot bear it -- after what we have seen
tonight."
"Why -- what -- " he had stammered and then was silent.
Rachel withdrew her arm from his but still walked near him. Then he had cried
out with the anguish of one who begins to see a great loss facing him where he
expected a great joy.
"Rachel! Do you not love me? Is not my love for you as sacred as anything
in all of life itself?"
She had walked silent for a few steps after that. They passed a street lamp. Her
face was pale and beautiful. He had made a movement to clutch her arm and she
had moved a little farther from him.
"No," she had replied. "There was a time I -- cannot answer for
that you -- should not have spoken to me -- now."
He had seen in these words his answer. He was extremely sensitive. Nothing short
of a joyous response to his own love would ever have satisfied him. He could not
think of pleading with her.
"Some time -- when I am more worthy?" he had asked in a low voice, but
she did not seem to hear, and they had parted at her home, and he recalled
vividly the fact that no good-night had been said.
Now as he went over the brief but significant scene he lashed himself for his
foolish precipitancy. He had not reckoned on Rachel's tense, passionate
absorption of all her feeling in the scenes at the tent which were so new in her
mind. But he did not know her well enough even yet to understand the meaning of
her refusal. When the clock in the First Church struck one he was still sitting
at his desk staring at the last page of manuscript of his unfinished novel.
Rachel went up to her room and faced her evening's experience with conflicting
emotions. Had she ever loved Jasper Chase? Yes. No. One moment she felt that her
life's happiness was at stake over the result of her action. Another, she had a
strange feeling of relief that she had spoken as she had. There was one great,
overmastering feeling in her. The response of the wretched creatures in the tent
to her singing, the swift, powerful, awesome presence of the Holy Spirit had
affected her as never in all her life before. The moment Jasper had spoken her
name and she realized that he was telling her of his love she had felt a sudden
revulsion for him, as if he should have respected the supernatural events they
had just witnessed. She felt as if it was not the time to be absorbed in
anything less than the divine glory of those conversions. The thought that all
the time she was singing, with the one passion of her soul to touch the
conscience of that tent full of sin, Jasper Chase had been unmoved by it except
to love her for herself, gave her a shock as of irreverence on her part as well
as on his. She could not tell why she felt as she did, only she knew that if he
had not told her tonight she would still have felt the same toward him as she
always had. What was that feeling? What had he been to her? Had she made a
mistake? She went to her book case and took out the novel which Jasper had given
her. Her face deepened in color as she turned to certain passages which she had
read often and which she knew Jasper had written for her. She read them again.
Somehow they failed to touch her strongly. She closed the book and let it lie on
the table. She gradually felt that her thought was busy with the sights she had
witnessed in the tent. Those faces, men and women, touched for the first time
with the Spirit's glory -- what a wonderful thing life was after all! The
complete regeneration revealed in the sight of drunken, vile, debauched humanity
kneeling down to give itself to a life of purity and Christlikeness -- oh, it
was surely a witness to the superhuman in the world! And the face of Rollin Page
by the side of that miserable wreck out of the gutter! She could recall as if
she now saw it, Virginia crying with her arms about her brother just before she
left the tent, and Mr. Gray kneeling close by, and the girl Virginia had taken
into her heart while she whispered something to her before she went out. All
these pictures drawn by the Holy Spirit in the human tragedies brought to a
climax there in the most abandoned spot in all Raymond, stood out in Rachel's
memory now, a memory so recent that her room seemed for the time being to
contain all the actors and their movements.
"No! No!" she said aloud. "He had no right to speak after all
that! He should have respected the place where our thoughts should have been. I
am sure I do not love him -- not enough to give him my life!"
And after she had thus spoken, the evening's experience at the tent came
crowding in again, thrusting out all other things. It is perhaps the most
striking evidence of the tremendous spiritual factor which had now entered the
Rectangle that Rachel felt, even when the great love of a strong man had come
very near to her, that the spiritual manifestation moved her with an agitation
far greater than anything Jasper had felt for her personally or she for him.
The people of Raymond awoke Sunday morning to a growing knowledge of events
which were beginning to revolutionize many of the regular, customary habits of
the town. Alexander Powers' action in the matter of the railroad frauds had
created a sensation not only in Raymond but throughout the country. Edward
Norman's daily changes of policy in the conduct of his paper had startled the
community and caused more comment than any recent political event. Rachel
Winslow's singing at the Rectangle meetings had made a stir in society and
excited the wonder of all her friends.
Virginia's conduct, her presence every night with Rachel, her absence from the
usual circle of her wealthy, fashionable acquaintances, had furnished a great
deal of material for gossip and question. In addition to these events which
centered about these persons who were so well known, there had been all through
the city in very many homes and in business and social circles strange
happenings. Nearly one hundred persons in Henry Maxwell's church had made the
pledge to do everything after asking: "What would Jesus do?" and the
result had been, in many cases, unheard-of actions. The city was stirred as it
had never been before. As a climax to the week's events had come the spiritual
manifestation at the Rectangle, and the announcement which came to most people
before church time of the actual conversion at the tent of nearly fifty of the
worst characters in that neighborhood, together with the con version of Rollin
Page, the well-known society and club man.
It is no wonder that under the pressure of all this the First Church of Raymond
came to the morning service in a condition that made it quickly sensitive to any
large truth. Perhaps nothing had astonished the people more than the great
change that had come over the minister, since he had proposed to them the
imitation of Jesus in conduct. The dramatic delivery of his sermons no longer
impressed them. The self- satisfied, contented, easy attitude of the fine figure
and refined face in the pulpit had been displaced by a manner that could not be
compared with the old style of his delivery. The sermon had become a message. It
was no longer delivered. It was brought to them with a love, an earnestness, a
passion, a desire, a humility that poured its enthusiasm about the truth and
made the speaker no more prominent than he had to be as the living voice of God.
His prayers were unlike any the people had heard before. They were often broken,
even once or twice they had been actually ungrammatical in a phrase or two. When
had Henry Maxwell so far forgotten himself in a prayer as to make a mistake of
that sort? He knew that he had often taken as much pride in the diction and
delivery of his prayers as of his sermons. Was it possible he now so abhorred
the elegant refinement of a formal public petition that he purposely chose to
rebuke himself for his previous precise manner of prayer? It is more likely that
he had no thought of all that. His great longing to voice the needs and wants of
his people made him unmindful of an occasional mistake. It is certain that he
had never prayed so effectively as he did now.
There are times when a sermon has a value and power due to conditions in the
audience rather than to anything new or startling or eloquent in the words said
or arguments presented. Such conditions faced Henry Maxwell this morning as he
preached against the saloon, according to his purpose determined on the week
before. He had no new statements to make about the evil influence of the saloon
in Raymond. What new facts were there? He had no startling illustrations of the
power of the saloon in business or politics. What could he say that had not been
said by temperance orators a great many times? The effect of his message this
morning owed its power to the unusual fact of his preaching about the saloon at
all, together with the events that had stirred the people. He had never in the
course of his ten years' pastorate mentioned the saloon as something to be
regarded in the light of an enemy, not only to the poor and tempted, but to the
business life of the place and the church itself. He spoke now with a freedom
that seemed to measure his complete sense of conviction that Jesus would speak
so. At the close he pleaded with the people to remember the new life that had
begun at the Rectangle. The regular election of city officers was near at hand.
The question of license would be an issue in the election. What of the poor
creatures surrounded by the hell of drink while just beginning to feel the joy
of deliverance from sin? Who could tell what depended on their environment? Was
there one word to be said by the Christian disciple, business man, citizen, in
favor of continuing the license to crime and shame-producing institutions? Was
not the most Christian thing they could do to act as citizens in the matter,
fight the saloon at the polls, elect good men to the city offices, and clean the
municipality? How much had prayers helped to make Raymond better while votes and
actions had really been on the side of the enemies of Jesus? Would not Jesus do
this? What disciple could imagine Him refusing to suffer or to take up His cross
in this matter? How much had the members of the First Church ever suffered in an
attempt to imitate Jesus? Was Christian discipleship a thing of conscience
simply, of custom, of tradition? Where did the suffering come in? Was it
necessary in order to follow Jesus' steps to go up Calvary as well as the Mount
of Transfiguration?
His appeal was stronger at this point than he knew. It is not too much to say
that the spiritual tension of the people reached its highest point right there.
The imitation of Jesus which had begun with the volunteers in the church was
working like leaven in the organization, and Henry Maxwell would even thus early
in his life have been amazed if he could have measured the extent of desire on
the part of his people to take up the cross. While he was speaking this morning,
before he closed with a loving appeal to the discipleship of two thousand years'
knowledge of the Master, many a man and woman in the church was saying as Rachel
had said so passionately to her mother: "I want to do something that will
cost me something in the way of sacrifice." "I am hungry to suffer
something." Truly, Mazzini was right when he said that no appeal is quite
so powerful in the end as the call: "Come and suffer."
The service was over, the great audience had gone, and Maxwell again faced the
company gathered in the lecture room as on the two previous Sundays. He had
asked all to remain who had made the pledge of discipleship, and any others who
wished to be included. The after service seemed now to be a necessity. As he
went in and faced the people there his heart trembled. There were at least one
hundred present. The Holy Spirit was never before so manifest. He missed Jasper
Chase. But all the others were present. He asked Milton Wright to pray. The very
air was charged with divine possibilities. What could resist such a baptism of
power? How had they lived all these years without it?
They counseled together and there were many prayers. Henry Maxwell dated from
that meeting some of the serious events that afterward became a part of the
history of the First Church and of Raymond. When finally they went home, all of
them were impressed with the glory of the Spirit's power.
Chapter Eleven
DONALD MARSH, President of Lincoln College, walked home with Mr. Maxwell.
"I have reached one conclusion, Maxwell," said Marsh, speaking slowly.
"I have found my cross and it is a heavy one, but I shall never be
satisfied until I take it up and carry it." Maxwell was silent and the
President went on.
"Your sermon today made clear to me what I have long been feeling I ought
to do. 'What would Jesus do in my place?' I have asked the question repeatedly
since I made my promise. I have tried to satisfy myself that He would simply go
on as I have done, attending to the duties of my college work, teaching the
classes in Ethics and Philosophy. But I have not been able to avoid the feeling
that He would do something more. That something is what I do not want to do. It
will cause me genuine suffering to do it. I dread it with all my soul. You may
be able to guess what it is."
"Yes, I think I know. It is my cross too. I would almost rather do any
thing else."
Donald Marsh looked surprised, then relieved. Then he spoke sadly but with great
conviction: "Maxwell, you and I belong to a class of professional men who
have always avoided the duties of citizenship. We have lived in a little world
of literature and scholarly seclusion, doing work we have enjoyed and shrinking
from the disagreeable duties that belong to the life of the citizen. I confess
with shame that I have purposely avoided the responsibility that I owe to this
city personally. I understand that our city officials are a corrupt,
unprincipled set of men, controlled in large part by the whiskey element and
thoroughly selfish so far as the affairs of city government are concerned. Yet
all these years I, with nearly every teacher in the college, have been satisfied
to let other men run the municipality and have lived in a little world of my
own, out of touch and sympathy with the real world of the people. 'What would
Jesus do?' I have even tried to avoid an honest answer. I can no longer do so.
My plain duty is to take a personal part in this coming election, go to the
primaries, throw the weight of my influence, whatever it is, toward the
nomination and election of good men, and plunge into the very depths of the
entire horrible whirlpool of deceit, bribery, political trickery and saloonism
as it exists in Raymond today. I would sooner walk up to the mouth of a cannon
any time than do this. I dread it because I hate the touch of the whole matter.
I would give almost any thing to be able to say, 'I do not believe Jesus would
do anything of the sort.' But I am more and more persuaded that He would. This
is where the suffering comes for me. It would not hurt me half so much to lose
my position or my home. I loathe the contact with this municipal problem. I
would so much prefer to remain quietly in my scholastic life with my classes in
Ethics and Philosophy. But the call has come to me so plainly that I cannot
escape. 'Donald Marsh, follow me. Do your duty as a citizen of Raymond at the
point where your citizenship will cost you something. Help to cleanse this
municipal stable, even if you do have to soil your aristocratic feelings a
little.' Maxwell, this is my cross, I must take it up or deny my Lord."
"You have spoken for me also," replied Maxwell with a sad smile.
"Why should I, simply because I am a minister, shelter myself behind my
refined, sensitive feelings, and like a coward refuse to touch, except in a
sermon possibly, the duty of citizenship? I am unused to the ways of the
political life of the city. I have never taken an active part in any nomination
of good men. There are hundreds of ministers like me. As a class we do not
practice in the municipal life the duties and privileges we preach from the
pulpit. 'What would Jesus do?' I am now at a point where, like you, I am driven
to answer the question one way. My duty is plain. I must suffer. All my parish
work, all my little trials or self-sacrifices are as nothing to me compared with
the breaking into my scholarly, intellectual, self-contained habits, of this
open, coarse, public fight for a clean city life. I could go and live at the
Rectangle the rest of my life and work in the slums for a bare living, and I
could enjoy it more than the thought of plunging into a fight for the reform of
this whiskey-ridden city. It would cost me less. But, like you, I have been
unable to shake off my responsibility. The answer to the question 'What would
Jesus do?' in this case leaves me no peace except when I say, Jesus would have
me act the part of a Christian citizen. Marsh, as you say, we professional men,
ministers, professors, artists, literary men, scholars, have almost invariably
been political cowards. We have avoided the sacred duties of citizenship either
ignorantly or selfishly. Certainly Jesus in our age would not do that. We can do
no less than take up this cross, and follow Him."
The two men walked on in silence for a while. Finally President Marsh said:
"We do not need to act alone in this matter. With all the men who have made
the promise we certainly can have companionship, and strength even, of numbers.
Let us organize the Christian forces of Raymond for the battle against rum and
corruption. We certainly ought to enter the primaries with a force that will be
able to do more than enter a protest. It is a fact that the saloon element is
cowardly and easily frightened in spite of its lawlessness and corruption. Let
us plan a campaign that will mean something because it is organized
righteousness. Jesus would use great wisdom in this matter. He would employ
means. He would make large plans. Let us do so. If we bear this cross let us do
it bravely, like men."
They talked over the matter a long time and met again the next day in Maxwell's
study to develop plans. The city primaries were called for Friday. Rumors of
strange and unknown events to the average citizen were current that week in
political circles throughout Raymond. The Crawford system of balloting for
nominations was not in use in the state, and the primary was called for a public
meeting at the court house.
The citizens of Raymond will never forget that meeting. It was so unlike any
political meeting ever held in Raymond before, that there was no attempt at
comparison. The special officers to be nominated were mayor, city council, chief
of police, city clerk and city treasurer.
The evening NEWS in its Saturday edition gave a full account of the primaries,
and in the editorial columns Edward Norman spoke with a directness and
conviction that the Christian people of Raymond were learning to respect deeply,
because it was so evidently sincere and unselfish. A part of that editorial is
also a part of this history. We quote the following:
"It is safe to say that never before in the history of Raymond was there a
primary like the one in the court house last night. It was, first of all, a
complete surprise to the city politicians who have been in the habit of carrying
on the affairs of the city as if they owned them, and every one else was simply
a tool or a cipher. The overwhelming surprise of the wire pullers last night
consisted in the fact that a large number of the citizens of Raymond who have
heretofore taken no part in the city's affairs, entered the primary and
controlled it, nominating some of the best men for all the offices to be filled
at the coming election.
"It was a tremendous lesson in good citizenship. President Marsh of Lincoln
College, who never before entered a city primary, and whose face was not even
known to the ward politicians, made one of the best speeches ever made in
Raymond. It was almost ludicrous to see the faces of the men who for years have
done as they pleased, when President Marsh rose to speak. Many of them asked,
'Who is he?' The consternation deepened as the primary proceeded and it became
evident that the oldtime ring of city rulers was outnumbered. Rev. Henry Maxwell
of the First Church, Milton Wright, Alexander Powers, Professors Brown, Willard
and Park of Lincoln College, Dr. West, Rev. George Main of the Pilgrim Church,
Dean Ward of the Holy Trinity, and scores of well-known business men and
professional men, most of them church members, were present, and it did not take
long to see that they had all come with the one direct and definite purpose of
nominating the best men possible. Most of those men had never before been seen
in a primary. They were complete strangers to the politicians. But they had
evidently profited by the politician's methods and were able by organized and
united effort to nominate the entire ticket.
"As soon as it became plain that the primary was out of their control the
regular ring withdrew in disgust and nominated another ticket. The NEWS simply
calls the attention of all decent citizens to the fact that this last ticket
contains the names of whiskey men, and the line is sharply and distinctly drawn
between the saloon and corrupt management such as we have known for years, and a
clean, honest, capable, business-like city administration, such as every good
citizen ought to want. It is not necessary to remind the people of Raymond that
the question of local option comes up at the election. That will be the most
important question on the ticket. The crisis of our city affairs has been
reached. The issue is squarely before us. Shall we continue the rule of rum and
boodle and shameless incompetency, or shall we, as President Marsh said in his
noble speech, rise as good citizens and begin a new order of things, cleansing
our city of the worst enemy known to municipal honesty, and doing what lies in
our power to do with the ballot to purify our civic life?
"The NEWS is positively and without reservation on the side of the new
movement. We shall henceforth do all in our power to drive out the saloon and
destroy its political strength. We shall advocate the election of the men
nominated by the majority of citizens met in the first primary and we call upon
all Christians, church members, lovers of right, purity, temperance, and the
home, to stand by President Marsh and the rest of the citizens who have thus
begun a long-needed reform in our city."
President Marsh read this editorial and thanked God for Edward Norman. At the
same time he understood well enough that every other paper in Raymond was on the
other side. He did not underestimate the importance and seriousness of the fight
which was only just begun. It was no secret that the NEWS had lost enormously
since it had been governed by the standard of "What would Jesus do?"
And the question was, Would the Christian people of Raymond stand by it? Would
they make it possible for Norman to conduct a daily Christian paper? Or would
the desire for what is called news in the way of crime, scandal, political
partisanship of the regular sort, and a dislike to champion so remarkable a
reform in journalism, influence them to drop the paper and refuse to give it
their financial support? That was, in fact, the question Edward Norman was
asking even while he wrote that Saturday editorial. He knew well enough that his
actions expressed in that editorial would cost him very heavily from the hands
of many business men in Raymond. And still, as he drove his pen over the paper,
he asked another question, "What would Jesus do?" That question had
become a part of this whole life now. It was greater than any other.
But for the first time in its history Raymond had seen the professional men, the
teachers, the college professors, the doctors, the ministers, take political
action and put themselves definitely and sharply in public antagonism to the
evil forces that had so long controlled the machine of municipal government. The
fact itself was astounding. President Marsh acknowledged to himself with a
feeling of humiliation, that never before had he known what civic righteousness
could accomplish. From that Friday night's work he dated for himself and his
college a new definition of the worn phrase "the scholar in politics."
Education for him and those who were under his influence ever after meant some
element of suffering. Sacrifice must now enter into the factor of development.
At the Rectangle that week the tide of spiritual life rose high, and as yet
showed no signs of flowing back. Rachel and Virginia went every night. Virginia
was rapidly reaching a conclusion with respect to a large part of her money. She
had talked it over with Rachel and they had been able to agree that if Jesus had
a vast amount of money at His disposal He might do with some of it as Virginia
planned. At any rate they felt that whatever He might do in such case would have
as large an element of variety in it as the differences in persons and
circumstances. There could be no one fixed Christian way of using money. The
rule that regulated its use was unselfish utility.
But meanwhile the glory of the Spirit's power possessed all their best thought.
Night after night that week witnessed miracles as great as walking on the sea or
feeding the multitude with a few loaves and fishes. For what greater miracle is
there than a regenerate humanity? The transformation of these coarse, brutal,
sottish lives into praying, rapturous lovers of Christ, struck Rachel and
Virginia every time with the feeling that people may have had when they saw
Lazarus walk out of the tomb. It was an experience full of profound excitement
for them.
Rollin Page came to all the meetings. There was no doubt of the change that had
come over him. Rachel had not yet spoken much with him. He was wonderfully
quiet. It seemed as if he was thinking all the time. Certainly he was not the
same person. He talked more with Gray than with any one else. He did not avoid
Rachel, but he seemed to shrink from any appearance of seeming to renew the
acquaintance with her. Rachel found it even difficult to express to him her
pleasure at the new life he had begun to know. He seemed to be waiting to adjust
himself to his previous relations before this new life began. He had not
forgotten those relations. But he was not yet able to fit his consciousness into
new ones.
The end of the week found the Rectangle struggling hard between two mighty
opposing forces. The Holy Spirit was battling with all His supernatural strength
against the saloon devil which had so long held a jealous grasp on its slaves.
If the Christian people of Raymond once could realize what the contest meant to
the souls newly awakened to a purer life it did not seem possible that the
election could result in the old system of license. But that remained yet to be
seen. The horror of the daily surroundings of many of the converts was slowly
burning its way into the knowledge of Virginia and Rachel, and every night as
they went uptown to their luxurious homes they carried heavy hearts.
"A good many of these poor creatures will go back again," Gray would
say with sadness too deep for tears. "The environment does have a good deal
to do with the character. It does not stand to reason that these people can
always resist the sight and smell of the devilish drink about them. O Lord, how
long shall Christian people continue to support by their silence and their
ballots the greatest form of slavery known in America?"
He asked the question, and did not have much hope of an immediate answer. There
was a ray of hope in the action of Friday night's primary, but what the result
would be he did not dare to anticipate. The whiskey forces were organized,
alert, aggressive, roused into unusual hatred by the events of the last week at
the tent and in the city. Would the Christian forces act as a unit against the
saloon? Or would they be divided on account of their business interests or
because they were not in the habit of acting all together as the whiskey power
always did? That remained to be seen. Meanwhile the saloon reared itself about
the Rectangle like some deadly viper hissing and coiling, ready to strike its
poison into any unguarded part.
Saturday afternoon as Virginia was just stepping out of her house to go and see
Rachel to talk over her new plans, a carriage drove up containing three of her
fashionable friends. Virginia went out to the drive-way and stood there talking
with them. They had not come to make a formal call but wanted Virginia to go
driving with them up on the boulevard. There was a band concert in the park. The
day was too pleasant to be spent indoors.
"Where have you been all this time, Virginia?" asked one of the girls,
tapping her playfully on the shoulder with a red silk parasol. "We hear
that you have gone into the show business. Tell us about it."
Virginia colored, but after a moment's hesitation she frankly told something of
her experience at the Rectangle. The girls in the carriage began to be really
interested.
"I tell you, girls, let's go 'slumming' with Virginia this afternoon
instead of going to the band concert. I've never been down to the Rectangle.
I've heard it's an awful wicked place and lots to see. Virginia will act as
guide, and it would be" -- "real fun" she was going to say, but
Virginia's look made her substitute the word "interesting."
Virginia was angry. At first thought she said to herself she would never go
under such circumstances. The other girls seemed to be of the same mind with the
speaker. They chimed in with earnestness and asked Virginia to take them down
there.
Suddenly she saw in the idle curiosity of the girls an opportunity. They had
never seen the sin and misery of Raymond. Why should they not see it, even if
their motive in going down there was simply to pass away an afternoon.
"Very well, I'll go with you. You must obey my orders and let me take you
where you can see the most," she said, as she entered the carriage and took
the seat beside the girl who had first suggested the trip to the Rectangle.
Chapter Twelve
"For I come to set a man at variance against his father, and the daughter
against her mother, and the daughter-in- law against her mother-in-law; and a
man's foes shall be they of his own household."
"Be ye therefore imitators of God, as beloved children; and walk in love,
even as Christ also loved you."
"HADN'T we better take a policeman along?" said one of the girls with
a nervous laugh. "It really isn't safe down there, you know."
"There's no danger," said Virginia briefly.
"Is it true that your brother Rollin has been converted?" asked the
first speaker, looking at Virginia curiously. It impressed her during the drive
to the Rectangle that all three of her friends were regarding her with close
attention as if she were peculiar.
"Yes, he certainly is."
"I understand he is going around to the clubs talking with his old friends
there, trying to preach to them. Doesn't that seem funny?" said the girl
with the red silk parasol.
Virginia did not answer, and the other girls were beginning to feel sober as the
carriage turned into a street leading to the Rectangle. As they neared the
district they grew more and more nervous. The sights and smells and sounds which
had become familiar to Virginia struck the senses of these refined, delicate
society girls as something horrible. As they entered farther into the district,
the Rectangle seemed to stare as with one great, bleary, beer-soaked countenance
at this fine carriage with its load of fashionably dressed young women.
"Slumming" had never been a fad with Raymond society, and this was
perhaps the first time that the two had come together in this way. The girls
felt that instead of seeing the Rectangle they were being made the objects of
curiosity. They were frightened and disgusted.
"Let's go back. I've seen enough," said the girl who was sitting with
Virginia.
They were at that moment just opposite a notorious saloon and gambling house.
The street was narrow and the sidewalk crowded. Suddenly, out of the door of
this saloon a young woman reeled. She was singing in a broken, drunken sob that
seemed to indicate that she partly realized her awful condition, "Just as I
am, without one plea" -- and as the carriage rolled past she leered at it,
raising her face so that Virginia saw it very close to her own. It was the face
of the girl who had kneeled sobbing, that night with Virginia kneeling beside
her and praying for her.
"Stop!" cried Virginia, motioning to the driver who was looking
around. The carriage stopped, and in a moment she was out and had gone up to the
girl and taken her by the arm. "Loreen!" she said, and that was all.
The girl looked into her face, and her own changed into a look of utter horror.
The girls in the carriage were smitten into helpless astonishment. The
saloon-keeper had come to the door of the saloon and was standing there looking
on with his hands on his hips. And the Rectangle from its windows, its saloon
steps, its filthy sidewalk, gutter and roadway, paused, and with undisguised
wonder stared at the two girls. Over the scene the warm sun of spring poured its
mellow light. A faint breath of music from the band- stand in the park floated
into the Rectangle. The concert had begun, and the fashion and wealth of Raymond
were displaying themselves up town on the boulevard.
When Virginia left the carriage and went up to Loreen she had no definite idea
as to what she would do or what the result of her action would be. She simply
saw a soul that had tasted of the joy of a better life slipping back again into
its old hell of shame and death. And before she had touched the drunken girl's
arm she had asked only one question, "What would Jesus do?" That
question was becoming with her, as with many others, a habit of life.
She looked around now as she stood close by Loreen, and the whole scene was
cruelly vivid to her. She thought first of the girls in the carriage.
"Drive on; don't wait for me. I am going to see my friend home," she
said calmly enough.
The girl with the red parasol seemed to gasp at the word "friend,"
when Virginia spoke it. She did not say anything.
The other girls seemed speechless.
"Go on. I cannot go back with you," said Virginia. The driver started
the horses slowly. One of the girls leaned a little out of the carriage.
"Can't we -- that is -- do you want our help? Couldn't you -- "
"No, no!" exclaimed Virginia. "You cannot be of any help to
me."
The carriage moved on and Virginia was alone with her charge. She looked up and
around. Many faces in the crowd were sympathetic. They were not all cruel or
brutal. The Holy Spirit had softened a good deal of the Rectangle.
"Where does she live?" asked Virginia.
No one answered. It occurred to Virginia afterward when she had time to think it
over, that the Rectangle showed a delicacy in its sad silence that would have
done credit to the boulevard. For the first time it flashed across her that the
immortal being who was flung like wreckage upon the shore of this early hell
called the saloon, had no place that could be called home. The girl suddenly
wrenched her arm from Virginia's grasp. In doing so she nearly threw Virginia
down.
"You shall not touch me! Leave me! Let me go to hell! That's where I
belong! The devil is waiting for me. See him!" she exclaimed hoarsely. She
turned and pointed with a shaking finger at the saloon-keeper. The crowd
laughed. Virginia stepped up to her and put her arm about her.
"Loreen," she said firmly, "come with me. You do not belong to
hell. You belong to Jesus and He will save you. Come."
The girl suddenly burst into tears. She was only partly sobered by the shock of
meeting Virginia.
Virginia looked around again. "Where does Mr. Gray live?" she asked.
She knew that the evangelist boarded somewhere near the tent. A number of voices
gave the direction.
"Come, Loreen, I want you to go with me to Mr. Gray's," she said,
still keeping her hold of the swaying, trembling creature who moaned and sobbed
and now clung to her as firmly as before she had repulsed her.
So the two moved on through the Rectangle toward the evangelist's lodging place.
The sight seemed to impress the Rectangle seriously. It never took itself
seriously when it was drunk, but this was different. The fact that one of the
richest, most beautifully- dressed girls in all Raymond was taking care of one
of the Rectangle's most noted characters, who reeled along under the influence
of liquor, was a fact astounding enough to throw more or less dignity and
importance about Loreen herself. The event of Loreen's stumbling through the
gutter dead-drunk always made the Rectangle laugh and jest. But Loreen
staggering along with a young lady from the society circles uptown supporting
her, was another thing. The Rectangle viewed it with soberness and more or less
wondering admiration.
When they finally reached Mr. Gray's lodging place the woman who answered
Virginia's knock said that both Mr. and Mrs. Gray were out somewhere and would
not be back until six o'clock.
Virginia had not planned anything farther than a possible appeal to the Grays,
either to take charge of Loreen for a while or find some safe place for her
until she was sober. She stood now at the door after the woman had spoken, and
she was really at a loss to know what to do. Loreen sank down stupidly on the
steps and buried her face in her arms. Virginia eyed the miserable figure of the
girl with a feeling that she was afraid would grow into disgust.
Finally a thought possessed her that she could not escape. What was to hinder
her from taking Loreen home with her? Why should not this homeless, wretched
creature, reeking with the fumes of liquor, be cared for in Virginia's own home
instead of being consigned to strangers in some hospital or house of charity?
Virginia really knew very little about any such places of refuge. As a matter of
fact, there were two or three such institutions in Raymond, but it is doubtful
if any of them would have taken a person like Loreen in her present condition.
But that was not the question with Virginia just now. "What would Jesus do
with Loreen?" That was what Virginia faced, and she finally answered it by
touching the girl again.
"Loreen, come. You are going home with me. We will take the car here at the
corner."
Loreen staggered to her feet and, to Virginia's surprise, made no trouble. She
had expected resistance or a stubborn refusal to move. When they reached the
corner and took the car it was nearly full of people going uptown. Virginia was
painfully conscious of the stare that greeted her and her companion as they
entered. But her thought was directed more and more to the approaching scene
with her grandmother. What would Madam Page say?
Loreen was nearly sober now. But she was lapsing into a state of stupor.
Virginia was obliged to hold fast to her arm. Several times the girl lurched
heavily against her, and as the two went up the avenue a curious crowd of
so-called civilized people turned and gazed at them. When she mounted the steps
of her handsome house Virginia breathed a sigh of relief, even in the face of
the interview with the grandmother, and when the door shut and she was in the
wide hall with her homeless outcast, she felt equal to anything that might now
come.
Madam Page was in the library. Hearing Virginia come in, she came into the hall.
Virginia stood there supporting Loreen, who stared stupidly at the rich
magnificence of the furnishings around her.
"Grandmother," Virginia spoke without hesitation and very clearly,
"I have brought one of my friends from the Rectangle. She is in trouble and
has no home. I am going to care for her here a little while."
Madam Page glanced from her granddaughter to Loreen in astonishment.
"Did you say she is one of your friends?" she asked in a cold,
sneering voice that hurt Virginia more than anything she had yet felt.
"Yes, I said so." Virginia's face flushed, but she seemed to recall a
verse that Mr. Gray had used for one of his recent sermons, "A friend of
publicans and sinners." Surely, Jesus would do this that she was doing.
"Do you know what this girl is?" asked Madam Page, in an angry
whisper, stepping near Virginia.
"I know very well. She is an outcast. You need not tell me, grandmother. I
know it even better than you do. She is drunk at this minute. But she is also a
child of God. I have seen her on her knees, repentant. And I have seen hell
reach out its horrible fingers after her again. And by the grace of Christ I
feel that the least that I can do is to rescue her from such peril. Grandmother,
we call ourselves Christians. Here is a poor, lost human creature without a
home, slipping back into a life of misery and possibly eternal loss, and we have
more than enough. I have brought her here, and I shall keep her."
Madam Page glared at Virginia and clenched her hands. All this was contrary to
her social code of conduct. How could society excuse familiarity with the scum
of the streets? What would Virginia's action cost the family in the way of
criticism and loss of standing, and all that long list of necessary relations
which people of wealth and position must sustain to the leaders of society? To
Madam Page society represented more than the church or any other institution. It
was a power to be feared and obeyed. The loss of its good- will was a loss more
to be dreaded than anything except the loss of wealth itself.
She stood erect and stern and confronted Virginia, fully roused and determined.
Virginia placed her arm about Loreen and calmly looked her grandmother in the
face.
"You shall not do this, Virginia! You can send her to the asylum for
helpless women. We can pay all the expenses. We cannot afford for the sake of
our reputations to shelter such a person."
"Grandmother, I do not wish to do anything that is displeasing to you, but
I must keep Loreen here tonight, and longer if it seems best."
"Then you can answer for the consequences! I do not stay in the same house
with a miserable -- " Madam Page lost her self-control. Virginia stopped
her before she could speak the next word.
"Grandmother, this house is mine. It is your home with me as long as you
choose to remain. But in this matter I must act as I fully believe Jesus would
in my place. I am willing to bear all that society may say or do. Society is not
my God. By the side of this poor soul I do not count the verdict of society as
of any value."
"I shall not stay here, then!" said Madam Page. She turned suddenly
and walked to the end of the hall. She then came back, and going up to Virginia
said, with an emphasis that revealed her intensive excitement of passion:
"You can always remember that you have driven your grandmother out of your
house in favor of a drunken woman;" then, without waiting for Virginia to
reply, she turned again and went upstairs. Virginia called a servant and soon
had Loreen cared for. She was fast lapsing into a wretched condition. During the
brief scene in the hall she had clung to Virginia so hard that her arm was sore
from the clutch of the girl's fingers.
Virginia did not know whether her grandmother would leave the house or not. She
had abundant means of her own, was perfectly well and vigorous and capable of
caring for herself. She had sisters and brothers living in the South and was in
the habit of spending several weeks in the year with them. Virginia was not
anxious about her welfare as far as that went. But the interview had been a
painful one. Going over it, as she did in her room before she went down to tea,
she found little cause for regret. "What would Jesus do?" There was no
question in her mind that she had done the right thing. If she had made a
mistake, it was one of judgment, not of heart.
Chapter Thirteen
WHEN the bell rang for tea she went down and her grandmother did not appear. She
sent a servant to her room who brought back word that Madam Page was not there.
A few minutes later Rollin came in. He brought word that his grandmother had
taken the evening train for the South. He had been at the station to see some
friends off, and had by chance met his grandmother as he was coming out. She had
told him her reason for going.
Virginia and Rollin comforted each other at the tea table, looking at each other
with earnest, sad faces.
"Rollin," said Virginia, and for the first time, almost, since his
conversion she realized what a wonderful thing her brother's changed life meant
to her, "do you blame me? Am I wrong?"
"No, dear, I cannot believe you are. This is very painful for us. But if
you think this poor creature owes her safety and salvation to your personal
care, it was the only thing for you to do. O Virginia, to think that we have all
these years enjoyed our beautiful home and all these luxuries selfishly,
forgetful of the multitudes like this woman! Surely Jesus in our places would do
what you have done."
And so Rollin comforted Virginia and counseled with her that evening. And of all
the wonderful changes that she henceforth was to know on account of her great
pledge, nothing affected her so powerfully as the thought of Rollin's change of
life. Truly, this man in Christ was a new creature. Old things were passed away.
Behold, all things in him had become new.
Dr. West came that evening at Virginia's summons and did everything necessary
for the outcast. She had drunk herself almost into delirium. The best that could
be done for her now was quiet nursing and careful watching and personal love.
So, in a beautiful room, with a picture of Christ walking by the sea hanging on
the wall, where her bewildered eyes caught daily something more of its hidden
meaning, Loreen lay, tossed she hardly knew how into this haven, and Virginia
crept nearer the Master than she had ever been, as her heart went out towards
this wreck which had thus been flung torn and beaten at her feet.
Meanwhile the Rectangle awaited the issue of the election with more than usual
interest; and Mr. Gray and his wife wept over the poor, pitiful creatures who,
after a struggle with surroundings that daily tempted them, too often wearied of
the struggle and, like Loreen, threw up their arms and went whirling over the
cataract into the boiling abyss of their previous condition.
The after-meeting at the First Church was now eagerly established. Henry Maxwell
went into the lecture-room on the Sunday succeeding the week of the primary, and
was greeted with an enthusiasm that made him tremble at first for its reality.
He noted again the absence of Jasper Chase, but all the others were present, and
they seemed drawn very close together by a bond of common fellowship that
demanded and enjoyed mutual confidences. It was the general feeling that the
spirit of Jesus was the spirit of very open, frank confession of experience. It
seemed the most natural thing in the world, therefore, for Edward Norman to be
telling all the rest of the company about the details of his newspaper.
"The fact is, I have lost a great deal of money during the last three
weeks. I cannot tell just how much. I am losing a great many subscribers every
day."
"What do the subscribers give as their reason for dropping the paper?"
asked Mr. Maxwell. All the rest were listening eagerly.
"There are a good many different reasons. Some say they want a paper that
prints all the news; meaning, by that, the crime details, sensations like prize
fights, scandals and horrors of various kinds. Others object to the
discontinuance of the Sunday edition. I have lost hundreds of subscribers by
that action, although I have made satisfactory arrangements with many of the old
subscribers by giving them even more in the extra Saturday edition than they
formerly had in the Sunday issue. My greatest loss has come from a falling off
in advertisements, and from the attitude I have felt obliged to take on
political questions. The last action has really cost me more than any other. The
bulk of my subscribers are intensely partisan. I may as well tell you all
frankly that if I continue to pursue the plan which I honestly believe Jesus
would pursue in the matter of political issues and their treatment from a
non-partisan and moral standpoint, the NEWS will not be able to pay its
operating expenses unless one factor in Raymond can be depended on."
He paused a moment and the room was very quiet. Virginia seemed specially
interested. Her face glowed with interest. It was like the interest of a person
who had been thinking hard of the same thing which Norman went on to mention.
"That one factor is the Christian element in Raymond. Say the NEWS has lost
heavily from the dropping off of people who do not care for a Christian daily,
and from others who simply look upon a newspaper as a purveyor of all sorts of
material to amuse or interest them, are there enough genuine Christian people in
Raymond who will rally to the support of a paper such as Jesus would probably
edit? or are the habits of the church people so firmly established in their
demand for the regular type of journalism that they will not take a paper unless
it is stripped largely of the Christian and moral purpose? I may say in this
fellowship gathering that owing to recent complications in my business affairs
outside of my paper I have been obliged to lose a large part of my fortune. I
had to apply the same rule of Jesus' probable conduct to certain transactions
with other men who did not apply it to their conduct, and the result has been
the loss of a great deal of money. As I understand the promise we made, we were
not to ask any question about 'Will it pay?' but all our action was to be based
on the one question, 'What would Jesus do?' Acting on that rule of conduct, I
have been obliged to lose nearly all the money I have accumulated in my paper.
It is not necessary for me to go into details. There is no question with me now,
after the three weeks' experience I have had, that a great many men would lose
vast sums of money under the present system of business if this rule of Jesus
was honestly applied. I mention my loss here because I have the fullest faith in
the final success of a daily paper conducted on the lines I have recently laid
down, and I had planned to put into it my entire fortune in order to win final
success. As it is now, unless, as I said, the Christian people of Raymond, the
church members and professing disciples, will support the paper with
subscriptions and advertisements, I cannot continue its publication on the
present basis."
Virginia asked a question. She had followed Mr. Norman's confession with the
most intense eagerness.
"Do you mean that a Christian daily ought to be endowed with a large sum
like a Christian college in order to make it pay?"
"That is exactly what I mean. I had laid out plans for putting into the
NEWS such a variety of material in such a strong and truly interesting way that
it would more than make up for whatever was absent from its columns in the way
of un-Christian matter. But my plans called for a very large output of money. I
am very confident that a Christian daily such as Jesus would approve, containing
only what He would print, can be made to succeed financially if it is planned on
the right lines. But it will take a large sum of money to work out the
plans."
"How much, do you think?" asked Virginia quietly.
Edward Norman looked at her keenly, and his face flushed a moment as an idea of
her purpose crossed his mind. He had known her when she was a little girl in the
Sunday-school, and he had been on intimate business relations with her father.
"I should say half a million dollars in a town like Raymond could be well
spent in the establishment of a paper such as we have in mind," he
answered. His voice trembled a little. The keen look on his grizzled face
flashed out with a stern but thoroughly Christian anticipation of great
achievements in the world of newspaper life, as it had opened up to him within
the last few seconds.
"Then," said Virginia, speaking as if the thought was fully
considered, "I am ready to put that amount of money into the paper on the
one condition, of course, that it be carried on as it has been begun."
"Thank God!" exclaimed Mr. Maxwell softly. Norman was pale. The rest
were looking at Virginia. She had more to say.
"Dear friends," she went on, and there was a sadness in her voice that
made an impression on the rest that deepened when they thought it over
afterwards, "I do not want any of you to credit me with an act of great
generosity. I have come to know lately that the money which I have called my own
is not mine, but God's. If I, as steward of His, see some wise way to invest His
money, it is not an occasion for vainglory or thanks from any one simply because
I have proved in my administration of the funds He has asked me to use for His
glory. I have been thinking of this very plan for some time. The fact is, dear
friends, that in our coming fight with the whiskey power in Raymond -- and it
has only just begun -- we shall need the NEWS to champion the Christian side.
You all know that all the other papers are for the saloon. As long as the saloon
exists, the work of rescuing dying souls at the Rectangle is carried on at a
terrible disadvantage. What can Mr. Gray do with his gospel meetings when half
his converts are drinking people, daily tempted and enticed by the saloon on
every corner? It would be giving up to the enemy to allow the NEWS to fail. I
have great confidence in Mr. Norman's ability. I have not seen his plans, but I
have the same confidence that he has in making the paper succeed if it is
carried forward on a large enough scale. I cannot believe that Christian
intelligence in journalism will be inferior to un-Christian intelligence, even
when it comes to making the paper pay financially. So that is my reason for
putting this money -- God's, not mine -- into this powerful agent for doing as
Jesus would do. If we can keep such a paper going for one year, I shall be
willing to see that amount of money used in that experiment. Do not thank me. Do
not consider my doing it a wonderful thing. What have I done with God's money
all these years but gratify my own selfish personal desires? What can I do with
the rest of it but try to make some reparation for what I have stolen from God?
That is the way I look at it now. I believe it is what Jesus would do."
Over the lecture-room swept that unseen yet distinctly felt wave of Divine
Presence. No one spoke for a while. Mr. Maxwell standing there, where the faces
lifted their intense gaze into his, felt what he had already felt -- a strange
setting back out of the nineteenth century into the first, when the disciples
had all things in common, and a spirit of fellowship must have flowed freely
between them such as the First Church of Raymond had never before known. How
much had his church membership known of this fellowship in daily interests
before this little company had begun to do as they believed Jesus would do? It
was with difficulty that he thought of his present age and surroundings. The
same thought was present with all the rest, also. There was an unspoken
comradeship such as they had never known. It was present with them while
Virginia was speaking, and during the silence that followed. If it had been
defined by any of them it would perhaps have taken some such shape as this:
"If I shall, in the course of my obedience to my promise, meet with loss or
trouble in the world, I can depend upon the genuine, practical sympathy and
fellowship of any other Christian in this room who has, with me, made the pledge
to do all things by the rule, 'What would Jesus do?'"
All this, the distinct wave of spiritual power emphasized. It had the effect
that a physical miracle may have had on the early disciples in giving them a
feeling of confidence in the Lord that helped them to face loss and martyrdom
with courage and even joy.
Before they went away this time there were several confidences like those of
Edward Norman's. Some of the young men told of loss of places owing to their
honest obedience to their promise. Alexander Powers spoke briefly of the fact
that the Commission had promised to take action on his evidence at the earliest
date possible.
He was engaged at his old work of telegraphy. It was a significant fact that,
since his action in resigning his position, neither his wife nor daughter had
appeared in public. No one but himself knew the bitterness of that family
estrangement and misunderstanding of the higher motive. Yet many of the
disciples present in the meeting carried similar burdens. These were things
which they could not talk about. Henry Maxwell, from his knowledge of his
people, could almost certainly know that obedience to their pledge had produced
in the heart of families separation of sympathy and even the introduction of
enmity and hatred. Truly, a man's foes are they of his own household when the
rule of Jesus is obeyed by some and disobeyed by others. Jesus is a great
divider of life. One must walk parallel with Him or directly across His way.
Chapter Fourteen
BUT more than any other feeling at this meeting rose the tide of fellowship for
one another. Maxwell watched it, trembling for its climax which he knew was not
yet reached. When it was, where would it lead them? He did not know, but he was
not unduly alarmed about it. Only he watched with growing wonder the results of
that simple promise as it was being obeyed in these various lives. Those results
were already being felt all over the city. Who could measure their influence at
the end of a year?
One practical form of this fellowship showed itself in the assurances which
Edward Norman received of support for his paper. There was a general flocking
toward him when the meeting closed, and the response to his appeal for help from
the Christian disciples in Raymond was fully understood by this little company.
The value of such a paper in the homes and in behalf of good citizenship,
especially at the present crisis in the city, could not be measured. It remained
to be seen what could be done now that the paper was endowed so liberally. But
it still was true, as Norman insisted, that money alone could not make the paper
a power. It must receive the support and sympathy of the Christians in Raymond
before it could be counted as one of the great forces of the city.
The week that followed this Sunday meeting was one of great excitement in
Raymond. It was the week of the election. President Marsh, true to his promise,
took up his cross and bore it manfully, but with shuddering, with groans and
even tears, for his deepest conviction was touched, and he tore himself out of
the scholarly seclusion of years with a pain and anguish that cost him more than
anything he had ever done as a follower of Christ. With him were a few of the
college professors who had made the pledge in the First Church. Their experience
and suffering were the same as his; for their isolation from all the duties of
citizenship had been the same. The same was also true of Henry Maxwell, who
plunged into the horror of this fight against whiskey and its allies with a
sickening dread of each day's new encounter with it. For never before had he
borne such a cross. He staggered under it, and in the brief intervals when he
came in from the work and sought the quiet of his study for rest, the sweat
broke out on his forehead, and he felt the actual terror of one who marches into
unseen, unknown horrors. Looking back on it afterwards he was amazed at his
experience. He was not a coward, but he felt the dread that any man of his
habits feels when confronted suddenly with a duty which carries with it the
doing of certain things so unfamiliar that the actual details connected with it
betray his ignorance and fill him with the shame of humiliation.
When Saturday, the election day, came, the excitement rose to its height. An
attempt was made to close all the saloons. It was only partly successful. There
was a great deal of drinking going on all day. The Rectangle boiled and heaved
and cursed and turned its worst side out to the gaze of the city. Gray had
continued his meetings during the week, and the results had been even greater
than he had dared to hope. When Saturday came, it seemed to him that the crisis
in his work had been reached. The Holy Spirit and the Satan of rum seemed to
rouse up to a desperate conflict. The more interest in the meetings, the more
ferocity and vileness outside. The saloon men no longer concealed their
feelings. Open threats of violence were made. Once during the week Gray and his
little company of helpers were assailed with missiles of various kinds as they
left the tent late at night. The police sent down a special force, and Virginia
and Rachel were always under the protection of either Rollin or Dr. West.
Rachel's power in song had not diminished. Rather, with each night, it seemed to
add to the intensity and reality of the Spirit's presence.
Gray had at first hesitated about having a meeting that night. But he had a
simple rule of action, and was always guided by it. The Spirit seemed to lead
him to continue the meeting, and so Saturday night he went on as usual.
The excitement all over the city had reached its climax when the polls closed at
six o'clock. Never before had there been such a contest in Raymond. The issue of
license or no-license had never been an issue under such circumstances. Never
before had such elements in the city been arrayed against each other. It was an
unheard-of thing that the President of Lincoln College, the pastor of the First
Church, the Dean of the Cathedral, the professional men living in fine houses on
the boulevard, should come personally into the wards, and by their presence and
their example represent the Christian conscience of the place. The ward
politicians were astonished at the sight. However, their astonishment did not
prevent their activity. The fight grew hotter every hour, and when six o'clock
came neither side could have guessed at the result with any certainty. Every one
agreed that never before had there been such an election in Raymond, and both
sides awaited the announcement of the result with the greatest interest.
It was after ten o'clock when the meeting at the tent was closed. It had been a
strange and, in some respects, a remarkable meeting. Maxwell had come down again
at Gray's request. He was completely worn out by the day's work, but the appeal
from Gray came to him in such a form that he did not feel able to resist it.
President Marsh was also present. He had never been to the Rectangle, and his
curiosity was aroused from what he had noticed of the influence of the
evangelist in the worst part of the city. Dr. West and Rollin had come with
Rachel and Virginia; and Loreen, who still stayed with Virginia, was present
near the organ, in her right mind, sober, with a humility and dread of herself
that kept her as close to Virginia as a faithful dog. All through the service
she sat with bowed head, weeping a part of the time, sobbing when Rachel sang
the song, "I was a wandering sheep," clinging with almost visible,
tangible yearning to the one hope she had found, listening to prayer and appeal
and confession all about her like one who was a part of a new creation, yet
fearful of her right to share in it fully.
The tent had been crowded. As on some other occasions, there was more or less
disturbance on the outside. This had increased as the night advanced, and Gray
thought it wise not to prolong the service.
Once in a while a shout as from a large crowd swept into the tent. The returns
from the election were beginning to come in, and the Rectangle had emptied every
lodging house, den and hovel into the streets.
In spite of these distractions Rachel's singing kept the crowd in the tent from
dissolving. There were a dozen or more conversions. Finally the people became
restless and Gray closed the service, remaining a little while with the
converts.
Rachel, Virginia, Loreen, Rollin and the Doctor, President Marsh, Mr. Maxwell
and Dr. West went out together, intending to go down to the usual waiting place
for their car. As they came out of the tent they were at once aware that the
Rectangle was trembling on the verge of a drunken riot, and as they pushed
through the gathering mobs in the narrow streets they began to realize that they
themselves were objects of great attention.
"There he is -- the bloke in the tall hat! He's the leader! shouted a rough
voice. President Marsh, with his erect, commanding figure, was conspicuous in
the little company.
"How has the election gone? It is too early to know the result yet, isn't
it?" He asked the question aloud, and a man answered:
"They say second and third wards have gone almost solid for no-license. If
that is so, the whiskey men have been beaten."
"Thank God! I hope it is true!" exclaimed Maxwell. "Marsh, we are
in danger here. Do you realize our situation? We ought to get the ladies to a
place of safety."
"That is true," said Marsh gravely. At that moment a shower of stones
and other missiles fell over them. The narrow street and sidewalk in front of
them was completely choked with the worst elements of the Rectangle.
"This looks serious," said Maxwell. With Marsh and Rollin and Dr. West
he started to go forward through a small opening, Virginia, Rachel, and Loreen
following close and sheltered by the men, who now realized something of their
danger. The Rectangle was drunk and enraged. It saw in Marsh and Maxwell two of
the leaders in the election contest which had perhaps robbed them of their
beloved saloon.
"Down with the aristocrats!" shouted a shrill voice, more like a
woman's than a man's. A shower of mud and stones followed. Rachel remembered
afterwards that Rollin jumped directly in front of her and received on his head
and chest a number of blows that would probably have struck her if he had not
shielded her from them.
And just then, before the police reached them, Loreen darted forward in front of
Virginia and pushed her aside, looking up and screaming. It was so sudden that
no one had time to catch the face of the one who did it. But out of the upper
window of a room, over the very saloon where Loreen had come out a week before,
someone had thrown a heavy bottle. It struck Loreen on the head and she fell to
the ground. Virginia turned and instantly kneeled down by her. The police
officers by that time had reached the little company.
President Marsh raised his arm and shouted over the howl that was beginning to
rise from the wild beast in the mob.
"Stop! You've killed a woman!" The announcement partly sobered the
crowd.
"Is it true?" Maxwell asked it, as Dr. West kneeled on the other side
of Loreen, supporting her.
"She's dying!" said Dr. West briefly.
Loreen opened her eyes and smiled at Virginia, who wiped the blood from her face
and then bent over and kissed her. Loreen smiled again, and the next minute her
soul was in Paradise.
And yet this is only one woman out of thousands killed by this drink evil. Crowd
back, now, ye sinful men and women in this filthy street! Let this august dead
form be borne through your stupefied, sobered ranks! She was one of your own
children. The Rectangle had stamped the image of the beast on her. Thank Him who
died for sinners that the other image of a new soul now shines out of her pale
clay. Crowd back! Give them room! Let her pass reverently, followed and
surrounded by the weeping, awestruck company of Christians. Ye killed her, ye
drunken murderers! And yet -- and yet -- O Christian America, who killed this
woman? Stand back! Silence, there! A woman has been killed. Who? Loreen. Child
of the streets. Poor, drunken, vile sinner. O Lord God, how long, how long? Yes.
The saloon killed her; that is, the Christians of America, who license the
saloon. And the Judgment Day only shall declare who was the murderer of Loreen.
Chapter Fifteen
"He that followeth me shall not walk in darkness."
THE body of Loreen lay in state at the Page mansion on the avenue. It was Sunday
morning and the clear sweet spring air, just beginning to breathe over the city
the perfume of early blossoms in the woods and fields, swept over the casket
from one of the open windows at the end of the grand hall. The church bells were
ringing and people on the avenue going by to service turned curious, inquiring
looks up at the great house and then went on, talking of the recent events which
had so strangely entered into and made history in the city.
At the First Church, Mr. Maxwell, bearing on his face marks of the scene he had
been through, confronted an immense congregation, and spoke to it with a passion
and a power that came so naturally out of the profound experiences of the day
before that his people felt for him something of the old feeling of pride they
once had in his dramatic delivery. Only this was with a different attitude. And
all through his impassioned appeal this morning, there was a note of sadness and
rebuke and stern condemnation that made many of the members pale with
self-accusation or with inward anger.
For Raymond had awakened that morning to the fact that the city had gone for
license after all. The rumor at the Rectangle that the second and third wards
had gone no-license proved to be false. It was true that the victory was won by
a very meager majority. But the result was the same as if it had been
overwhelming. Raymond had voted to continue for another year the saloon. The
Christians of Raymond stood condemned by the result. More than a hundred
professing Christian disciples had failed to go to the polls, and many more than
that number had voted with the whiskey men. If all the church members of Raymond
had voted against the saloon, it would today be outlawed instead of crowned king
of the municipality. For that had been the fact in Raymond for years. The saloon
ruled. No one denied that. What would Jesus do? And this woman who had been
brutally struck down by the very hand that had assisted so eagerly to work her
earthly ruin what of her? Was it anything more than the logical sequence of the
whole horrible system of license, that for another year the very saloon that
received her so often and compassed her degradation, from whose very spot the
weapon had been hurled that struck her dead, would, by the law which the
Christian people of Raymond voted to support, perhaps open its doors tomorrow
and damn a hundred Loreens before the year had drawn to its bloody close?
All this, with a voice that rang and trembled and broke in sobs of anguish for
the result, did Henry Maxwell pour out upon his people that Sunday morning. And
men and women wept as he spoke. President Marsh sat there, his usual erect,
handsome, firm, bright self-confident bearing all gone; his head bowed upon his
breast, the great tears rolling down his cheeks, unmindful of the fact that
never before had he shown outward emotion in a public service. Edward Norman
near by sat with his clear-cut, keen face erect, but his lip trembled and he
clutched the end of the pew with a feeling of emotion that struck deep into his
knowledge of the truth as Maxwell spoke it. No man had given or suffered more to
influence public opinion that week than Norman. The thought that the Christian
conscience had been aroused too late or too feebly, lay with a weight of
accusation upon the heart of the editor. What if he had begun to do as Jesus
would have done, long ago? Who could tell what might have been accomplished by
this time! And up in the choir, Rachel Winslow, with her face bowed on the
railing of the oak screen, gave way to a feeling which she had not allowed yet
to master her, but it so unfitted her for her part that when Mr. Maxwell
finished and she tried to sing the closing solo after the prayer, her voice
broke, and for the first time in her life she was obliged to sit down, sobbing,
and unable to go on.
Over the church, in the silence that followed this strange scene, sobs and the
noise of weeping arose. When had the First Church yielded to such a baptism of
tears? What had become of its regular, precise, conventional order of service,
undisturbed by any vulgar emotion and unmoved by any foolish excitement? But the
people had lately had their deepest convictions touched. They had been living so
long on their surface feelings that they had almost forgotten the deeper wells
of life. Now that they had broken the surface, the people were convicted of the
meaning of their discipleship.
Mr. Maxwell did not ask, this morning, for volunteers to join those who had
already pledged to do as Jesus would. But when the congregation had finally
gone, and he had entered the lecture-room, it needed but a glance to show him
that the original company of followers had been largely increased. The meeting
was tender; it glowed with the Spirit's presence; it was alive with strong and
lasting resolve to begin a war on the whiskey power in Raymond that would break
its reign forever. Since the first Sunday when the first company of volunteers
had pledged themselves to do as Jesus would do, the different meetings had been
characterized by distinct impulses or impressions. Today, the entire force of
the gathering seemed to be directed to this one large purpose. It was a meeting
full of broken prayers of contrition, of confession, of strong yearning for a
new and better city life. And all through it ran one general cry for deliverance
from the saloon and its awful curse.
But if the First Church was deeply stirred by the events of the last week, the
Rectangle also felt moved strangely in its own way. The death of Loreen was not
in itself so remarkable a fact. It was her recent acquaintance with the people
from the city that lifted her into special prominence and surrounded her death
with more than ordinary importance. Every one in the Rectangle knew that Loreen
was at this moment lying in the Page mansion up on the avenue. Exaggerated
reports of the magnificence of the casket had already furnished material for
eager gossip. The Rectangle was excited to know the details of the funeral.
Would it be public? What did Miss Page intend to do? The Rectangle had never
before mingled even in this distant personal manner with the aristocracy on the
boulevard. The opportunities for doing so were not frequent. Gray and his wife
were besieged by inquirers who wanted to know what Loreen's friends and
acquaintances were expected to do in paying their last respects to her. For her
acquaintance was large and many of the recent converts were among her friends.
So that is how it happened that Monday afternoon, at the tent, the funeral
service of Loreen was held before an immense audience that choked the tent and
overflowed beyond all previous bounds. Gray had gone up to Virginia's and, after
talking it over with her and Maxwell, the arrangement had been made.
"I am and always have been opposed to large public funerals," said
Gray, whose complete wholesome simplicity of character was one of its great
sources of strength; "but the cry of the poor creatures who knew Loreen is
so earnest that I do not know how to refuse this desire to see her and pay her
poor body some last little honor. What do you think, Mr. Maxwell? I will be
guided by your judgment in the matter. I am sure that whatever you and Miss Page
think best, will be right."
"I feel as you do," replied Mr. Maxwell. "Under the circumstances
I have a great distaste for what seems like display at such times. But this
seems different. The people at the Rectangle will not come here to service. I
think the most Christian thing will be to let them have the service at the tent.
Do you think so, Miss Virginia?"
"Yes," said Virginia. "Poor soul! I do not know but that some
time I shall know she gave her life for mine. We certainly cannot and will not
use the occasion for vulgar display. Let her friends be allowed the
gratification of their wishes. I see no harm in it."
So the arrangements were made, with some difficulty, for the service at the
tent; and Virginia with her uncle and Rollin, accompanied by Maxwell, Rachel and
President Marsh, and the quartet from the First Church, went down and witnessed
one of the strange things of their lives.
It happened that that afternoon a somewhat noted newspaper correspondent was
passing through Raymond on his way to an editorial convention in a neighboring
city. He heard of the contemplated service at the tent and went down. His
description of it was written in a graphic style that caught the attention of
very many readers the next day. A fragment of his account belongs to this part
of the history of Raymond:
"There was a very unique and unusual funeral service held here this
afternoon at the tent of an evangelist, Rev. John Gray, down in the slum
district known as the Rectangle. The occasion was caused by the killing of a
woman during an election riot last Saturday night. It seems she had been
recently converted during the evangelist's meetings, and was killed while
returning from one of the meetings in company with other converts and some of
her friends. She was a common street drunkard, and yet the services at the tent
were as impressive as any I ever witnessed in a metropolitan church over the
most distinguished citizen.
"In the first place, a most exquisite anthem was sung by a trained choir.
It struck me, of course -- being a stranger in the place -- with considerable
astonishment to hear voices like those one naturally expects to hear only in
great churches or concerts, at such a meeting as this. But the most remarkable
part of the music was a solo sung by a strikingly beautiful young woman, a Miss
Winslow who, if I remember right, is the young singer who was sought for by
Crandall the manager of National Opera, and who for some reason refused to
accept his offer to go on the stage. She had a most wonderful manner in singing,
and everybody was weeping before she had sung a dozen words. That, of course, is
not so strange an effect to be produced at a funeral service, but the voice
itself was one of thousands. I understand Miss Winslow sings in the First Church
of Raymond and could probably command almost any salary as a public singer. She
will probably be heard from soon. Such a voice could win its way anywhere.
"The service aside from the singing was peculiar. The evangelist, a man of
apparently very simple, unassuming style, spoke a few words, and he was followed
by a fine-looking man, the Rev. Henry Maxwell, pastor of the First Church of
Raymond. Mr. Maxwell spoke of the fact that the dead woman had been fully
prepared to go, but he spoke in a peculiarly sensitive manner of the effect of
the liquor business on the lives of men and women like this one. Raymond, of
course, being a railroad town and the centre of the great packing interests for
this region, is full of saloons. I caught from the minister's remarks that he
had only recently changed his views in regard to license. He certainly made a
very striking address, and yet it was in no sense inappropriate for a funeral.
"Then followed what was perhaps the queer part of this strange service. The
women in the tent, at least a large part of them up near the coffin, began to
sing in a soft, tearful way, 'I was a wandering sheep.' Then while the singing
was going on, one row of women stood up and walked slowly past the casket, and
as they went by, each one placed a flower of some kind upon it. Then they sat
down and another row filed past, leaving their flowers. All the time the singing
continued softly like rain on a tent cover when the wind is gentle. It was one
of the simplest and at the same time one of the most impressive sights I ever
witnessed. The sides of the tent were up, and hundreds of people who could not
get in, stood outside, all as still as death itself, with wonderful sadness and
solemnity for such rough looking people. There must have been a hundred of these
women, and I was told many of them had been converted at the meetings just
recently. I cannot describe the effect of that singing. Not a man sang a note.
All women's voices, and so soft, and yet so distinct, that the effect was
startling.
"The service closed with another solo by Miss Winslow, who sang, 'There
were ninety and nine.' And then the evangelist asked them all to bow their heads
while he prayed. I was obliged in order to catch my train to leave during the
prayer, and the last view I caught of the service as the train went by the shops
was a sight of the great crowd pouring out of the tent and forming in open ranks
while the coffin was borne out by six of the women. It is a long time since I
have seen such a picture in this unpoetic Republic."
If Loreen's funeral impressed a passing stranger like this, it is not difficult
to imagine the profound feelings of those who had been so intimately connected
with her life and death. Nothing had ever entered the Rectangle that had moved
it so deeply as Loreen's body in that coffin. And the Holy Spirit seemed to
bless with special power the use of this senseless clay. For that night He swept
more than a score of lost souls, mostly women, into the fold of the Good
Shepherd.
It should be said here that Mr. Maxwell's statements concerning the opening of
the saloon from whose windows Loreen had been killed, proved nearly exactly
true. It was formally closed Monday and Tuesday while the authorities made
arrests of the proprietors charged with the murder. But nothing could be proved
against any one, and before Saturday of that week the saloon was running as
regularly as ever. No one on the earth was ever punished by earthly courts for
the murder of Loreen.
Chapter Sixteen
No one in all Raymond, including the Rectangle, felt Loreen's death more keenly
than Virginia. It came like a distinct personal loss to her. That short week
while the girl had been in her home had opened Virginia's heart to a new life.
She was talking it over with Rachel the day after the funeral. Thee were sitting
in the hall of the Page mansion.
"I am going to do something with my money to help those women to a better
life." Virginia looked over to the end of the hall where, the day before,
Loreen's body had lain. "I have decided on a good plan, as it seems to me.
I have talked it over with Rollin. He will devote a large part of his money also
to the same plan."
"How much money have you, Virginia, to give in this way?" asked
Rachel. Once, she would never have asked such a personal question. Now, it
seemed as natural to talk frankly about money as about anything else that
belonged to God.
"I have available for use at least four hundred and fifty-thousand dollars.
Rollin has as much more. It is one of his bitter regrets now that his
extravagant habits of life before his conversion practically threw away half
that father left him. We are both eager to make all the reparation in our power.
'What would Jesus do with this money?' We want to answer that question honestly
and wisely. The money I shall put into the NEWS is, I am confident, in a line
with His probable action. It is as necessary that we have a Christian daily
paper in Raymond, especially now that we have the saloon influence to meet, as
it is to have a church or a college. So I am satisfied that the five hundred
thousand dollars that Mr. Norman will know how to use so well will be a powerful
factor in Raymond to do as Jesus would.
"About my other plan, Rachel, I want you to work with me. Rollin and I are
going to buy up a large part of the property in the Rectangle. The field where
the tent now is, has been in litigation for years. We mean to secure the entire
tract as soon as the courts have settled the title. For some time I have been
making a special study of the various forms of college settlements and residence
methods of Christian work and Institutional church work in the heart of great
city slums. I do not know that I have yet been able to tell just what is the
wisest and most effective kind of work that can be done in Raymond. But I do
know this much. My money -- I mean God's, which he wants me to use -- can build
wholesome lodging-houses, refuges for poor women, asylums for shop girls, safety
for many and many a lost girl like Loreen. And I do not want to be simply a
dispenser of this money. God help me! I do want to put myself into the problem.
But you know, Rachel, I have a feeling all the time that all that limitless
money and limitless personal sacrifice can possibly do, will not really lessen
very much the awful condition at the Rectangle as long as the saloon is legally
established there. I think that is true of any Christian work now being carried
on in any great city. The saloon furnishes material to be saved faster than the
settlement or residence or rescue mission work can save it."
Virginia suddenly rose and paced the hall. Rachel answered sadly, and yet with a
note of hope in her voice:
"It is true. But, Virginia, what a wonderful amount of good can be done
with this money! And the saloon cannot always remain here. The time must come
when the Christian forces in the city will triumph."
Virginia paused near Rachel, and her pale, earnest face lighted up.
"I believe that too. The number of those who have promised to do as Jesus
would is increasing. If we once have, say, five hundred such disciples in
Raymond, the saloon is doomed. But now, dear, I want you to look at your part in
this plan for capturing and saving the Rectangle. Your voice is a power. I have
had many ideas lately. Here is one of them. You could organize among the girls a
Musical Institute; give them the benefit of your training. There are some
splendid voices in the rough there. Did any one ever hear such singing as that
yesterday by those women? Rachel, what a beautiful opportunity! You shall have
the best of material in the way of organs and orchestras that money can provide,
and what cannot be done with music to win souls there into higher and purer and
better living?"
Before Virginia had ceased speaking Rachel's face was perfectly transformed with
the thought of her life work. It flowed into her heart and mind like a flood,
and the torrent of her feeling overflowed in tears that could not be restrained.
It was what she had dreamed of doing herself. It represented to her something
that she felt was in keeping with a right use of her talent.
"Yes," she said, as she rose and put her arm about Virginia, while
both girls in the excitement of their enthusiasm paced the hall. "Yes, I
will gladly put my life into that kind of service. I do believe that Jesus would
have me use my life in this way. Virginia, what miracles can we not accomplish
in humanity if we have such a lever as consecrated money to move things
with!"
"Add to it consecrated personal enthusiasm like yours, and it certainly can
accomplish great things," said Virginia smiling. And before Rachel could
reply, Rollin came in.
He hesitated a moment, and then was passing out of the hall into the library
when Virginia called him back and asked some questions about his work.
Rollin came back and sat down, and together the three discussed their future
plans. Rollin was apparently entirely free from embarrassment in Rachel's
presence while Virginia was with them, only his manner with her was almost
precise, if not cold. The past seemed to have been entirely absorbed in his
wonderful conversion. He had not forgotten it, but he seemed to be completely
caught up for this present time in the purpose of his new life. After a while
Rollin was called out, and Rachel and Virginia began to talk of other things.
"By the way, what has become of Jasper Chase?" Virginia asked the
question innocently, but Rachel flushed and Virginia added with a smile, "I
suppose he is writing another book. Is he going to put you into this one,
Rachel? You know I always suspected Jasper Chase of doing that very thing in his
first story."
"Virginia," Rachel spoke with the frankness that had always existed
between the two friends, "Jasper Chase told me the other night that he --
in fact -- he proposed to me -- or he would, if "
Rachel stopped and sat with her hands clasped on her lap, and there were tears
in her eyes.
"Virginia, I thought a little while ago I loved him, as he said he loved
me. But when he spoke, my heart felt repelled, and I said what I ought to say. I
told him no. I have not seen him since. That was the night of the first
conversions at the Rectangle."
"I am glad for you," said Virginia quietly.
"Why?" asked Rachel a little startled.
"Because, I have never really liked Jasper Chase. He is too cold and -- I
do not like to judge him, but I have always distrusted his sincerity in taking
the pledge at the church with the rest."
Rachel looked at Virginia thoughtfully.
"I have never given my heart to him I am sure. He touched my emotions, and
I admired his skill as a writer. I have thought at times that I cared a good
deal for him. I think perhaps if he had spoken to me at any other time than the
one he chose, I could easily have persuaded myself that I loved him. But not
now."
Again Rachel paused suddenly, and when she looked up at Virginia again there
were tears on her face. Virginia came to her and put her arm about her tenderly.
When Rachel had left the house, Virginia sat in the hall thinking over the
confidence her friend had just shown her. There was something still to be told,
Virginia felt sure from Rachel's manner, but she did not feel hurt that Rachel
had kept back something. She was simply conscious of more on Rachel's mind than
she had revealed.
Very soon Rollin came back, and he and Virginia, arm in arm as they had lately
been in the habit of doing, walked up and down the long hall. It was easy for
their talk to settle finally upon Rachel because of the place she was to occupy
in the plans which were being made for the purchase of property at the
Rectangle.
"Did you ever know of a girl of such really gifted powers in vocal music
who was willing to give her life to the people as Rachel is going to do? She is
going to give music lessons in the city, have private pupils to make her living,
and then give the people in the Rectangle the benefit of her culture and her
voice."
"It is certainly a very good example of self-sacrifice," replied
Rollin a little stiffly.
Virginia looked at him a little sharply. "But don't you think it is a very
unusual example? Can you imagine -- " here Virginia named half a dozen
famous opera singers -- "doing anything of this sort?"
"No, I cannot," Rollin answered briefly. "Neither can I imagine
Miss -- " he spoke the name of the girl with the red parasol who had begged
Virginia to take the girls to the Rectangle -- " doing what you are doing,
Virginia."
"Any more than I can imagine Mr. -- " Virginia spoke the name of a
young society leader "going about to the clubs doing your work,
Rollin." The two walked on in silence for the length of the hall.
"Coming back to Rachel," began Virginia, "Rollin, why do you
treat her with such a distinct, precise manner? I think, Rollin -- pardon me if
I hurt you -- that she is annoyed by it. You need to be on easy terms. I don't
think Rachel likes this change."
Rollin suddenly stopped. He seemed deeply agitated. He took his arm from
Virginia's and walked alone to the end of the hall. Then he returned, with his
hands behind him, and stopped near his sister and said, "Virginia, have you
not learned my secret?"
Virginia looked bewildered, then over her face the unusual color crept, showing
that she understood.
"I have never loved any one but Rachel Winslow." Rollin spoke calmly
enough now. "That day she was here when you talked about her refusal to
join the concert company, I asked her to be my wife; out there on the avenue.
She refused me, as I knew she would. And she gave as her reason the fact that I
had no purpose in life, which was true enough. Now that I have a purpose, now
that I am a new man, don't you see, Virginia, how impossible it is for me to say
anything? I owe my very conversion to Rachel's singing. And yet that night while
she sang I can honestly say that, for the time being, I never thought of her
voice except as God's message. I believe that all my personal love for her was
for the time merged into a personal love to my God and my Saviour." Rollin
was silent, then he went on with more emotion. "I still love her, Virginia.
But I do not think she ever could love me." He stopped and looked his
sister in the face with a sad smile.
"I don't know about that," said Virginia to herself. She was noting
Rollin's handsome face, his marks of dissipation nearly all gone now, the firm
lips showing manhood and courage, the clear eyes looking into hers frankly, the
form strong and graceful. Rollin was a man now. Why should not Rachel come to
love him in time? Surely the two were well fitted for each other, especially now
that their purpose in life was moved by the same Christian force.
She said something of all this to Rollin, but he did not find much comfort. When
they closed the interview, Virginia carried away the impression that Rollin
meant to go his way with his chosen work, trying to reach the fashionable men at
the clubs, and while not avoiding Rachel, seeking no occasions for meeting her.
He was distrustful of his power to control his feeling. And Virginia could see
that he dreaded even the thought of a second refusal in case he did let Rachel
know that his love was still the same.
Chapter Seventeen
THE next day she went down to the NEWS office to see Edward Norman and arrange
the details of her part in the establishment of the paper on its new foundation.
Mr. Maxwell was present at this conference, and the three agreed that whatever
Jesus would do in detail as editor of a daily paper, He would be guided by the
same general principles that directed His conduct as the Saviour of the world.
"I have tried to put down here in concrete form some of the things that it
has seemed to me Jesus would do," said Edward Norman. He read from a paper
lying on his desk, and Maxwell was reminded again of his own effort to put into
written form his own conception of Jesus' probable action, and also of Milton
Wright's same attempt in his business.
"I have headed this, 'What would Jesus do as Edward Norman, editor of a
daily newspaper in Raymond?'
"1. He would never allow a sentence or a picture in his paper that could be
called bad or coarse or impure in any way.
"2. He would probably conduct the political part of the paper from the
standpoint of non-partisan patriotism, always looking upon all political
questions in the light of their relation to the Kingdom of God, and advocating
measures from the standpoint of their relation to the welfare of the people,
always on the basis of 'What is right?' never on the basis of 'What is for the
best interests of this or that party?' In other words, He would treat all
political questions as he would treat every other subject, from the standpoint
of the advancement of the Kingdom of God on earth."
Edward Norman looked up from the reading a moment. "You understand that is
my opinion of Jesus' probable action on political matters in a daily paper. I am
not passing judgment on other newspaper men who may have a different conception
of Jesus' probable action from mine. I am simply trying to answer honestly,
'What would Jesus do as Edward Norman?' And the answer I find is what I have put
down.'
"3. The end and aim of a daily paper conducted by Jesus would be to do the
will of God. That is, His main purpose in carrying on a newspaper would not be
to make money, or gain political influence; but His first and ruling purpose
would be to so conduct his paper that it would be evident to all his subscribers
that He was trying to seek first the Kingdom of God by means of His paper. This
purpose would be as distinct and unquestioned as the purpose of a minister or a
missionary or any unselfish martyr in Christian work anywhere.
"4. All questionable advertisements would be impossible.
"5. The relations of Jesus to the employees on the paper would be of the
most loving character."
"So far as I have gone," said Norman again looking up, "I am of
opinion that Jesus would employ practically some form of co-operation that would
represent the idea of a mutual interest in a business where all were to move
together for the same great end. I am working out such a plan, and I am
confident it will be successful. At any rate, once introduce the element of
personal love into a business like this, take out the selfish principle of doing
it for personal profits to a man or company, and I do not see any way except the
most loving personal interest between editors, reporters, pressmen, and all who
contribute anything to the life of the paper. And that interest would be
expressed not only in the personal love and sympathy but in a sharing with the
profits of the business."
"6. As editor of a daily paper today, Jesus would give large space to the
work of the Christian world. He would devote a page possibly to the facts of
Reform, of sociological problems, of institutional church work and similar
movements.
"7. He would do all in His power in His paper to fight the saloon as an
enemy of the human race and an unnecessary part of our civilization. He would do
this regardless of public sentiment in the matter and, of course, always
regardless of its effect upon His subscription list."
Again Edward Norman looked up. "I state my honest conviction on this point.
Of course, I do not pass judgment on the Christian men who are editing other
kinds of papers today. But as I interpret Jesus, I believe He would use the
influence of His paper to remove the saloon entirely from the political and
social life of the nation."
"8. Jesus would not issue a Sunday edition.
"9. He would print the news of the world that people ought to know. Among
the things they do not need to know, and which would not be published, would be
accounts of brutal prize-fights, long accounts of crimes, scandals in private
families, or any other human events which in any way would conflict with the
first point mentioned in this outline.
"10. If Jesus had the amount of money to use on a paper which we have, He
would probably secure the best and strongest Christian men and women to
co-operate with him in the matter of contributions. That will be my purpose, as
I shall be able to show you in a few days.
"11. Whatever the details of the paper might demand as the paper developed
along its definite plan, the main principle that guided it would always be the
establishment of the Kingdom of God in the world. This large general principle
would necessarily shape all the detail."
Edward Norman finished reading the plan. He was very thoughtful.
"I have merely sketched a faint outline. I have a hundred ideas for making
the paper powerful that I have not thought out fully as yet. This is simply
suggestive. I have talked it over with other newspaper men. Some of them say I
will have a weak, namby-pamby Sunday-school sheet. If I get out something as
good as a Sunday-school it will be pretty good. Why do men, when they want to
characterize something as particularly feeble, always use a Sunday-school as a
comparison, when they ought to know that the Sunday-school is one of the
strongest, most powerful influences in our civilization in this country today?
But the paper will not necessarily be weak because it is good. Good things are
more powerful than bad. The question with me is largely one of support from the
Christian people of Raymond. There are over twenty thousand church members here
in this city. If half of them will stand by the NEWS its life is assured. What
do you think, Maxwell, of the probability of such support?"
"I don't know enough about it to give an intelligent answer. I believe in
the paper with all my heart. If it lives a year, as Miss Virginia said, there is
no telling what it can do. The great thing will be to issue such a paper, as
near as we can judge, as Jesus probably would, and put into it all the elements
of Christian brains, strength, intelligence and sense; and command respect for
freedom from bigotry, fanaticism, narrowness and anything else that is contrary
to the spirit of Jesus. Such a paper will call for the best that human thought
and action is capable of giving. The greatest minds in the world would have
their powers taxed to the utmost to issue a Christian daily."
"Yes," Edward Norman spoke humbly. "I shall make a great many
mistakes, no doubt. I need a great deal of wisdom. But I want to do as Jesus
would. 'What would He do?' I have asked it, and shall continue to do so, and
abide by the results."
"I think we are beginning to understand," said Virginia, "the
meaning of that command, 'Grow in the grace and knowledge of our Lord and
Saviour Jesus Christ.' I am sure I do not know all that He would do in detail
until I know Him better."
"That is very true," said Henry Maxwell. "I am beginning to
understand that I cannot interpret the probable action of Jesus until I know
better what His spirit is. The greatest question in all of human life is summed
up when we ask, 'What would Jesus do?' if, as we ask it, we also try to answer
it from a growth in knowledge of Jesus himself. We must know Jesus before we can
imitate Him."
When the arrangement had been made between Virginia an Edward Norman, he found
himself in possession of the sum of five hundred thousand dollars to use for the
establishment of a Christian daily paper. When Virginia and Maxwell had gone,
Norman closed his door and, alone with the Divine Presence, asked like a child
for help from his all-powerful Father. All through his prayer as he kneeled
before his desk ran the promise, "If any man lack wisdom, let him ask of
God who giveth to all men liberally and upbraideth not, and it shall be given
him." Surely his prayer would be answered, and the kingdom advanced through
this instrument of God's power, this mighty press, which had become so largely
degraded to the base uses of man's avarice and ambition.
Two months went by. They were full of action and of results in the city of
Raymond and especially in the First Church. In spite of the approaching heat of
the summer season, the after-meeting of the disciples who had made the pledge to
do as Jesus would do, continued with enthusiasm and power. Gray had finished his
work at the Rectangle, and an outward observer going through the place could not
have seen any difference in the old conditions, although there was an actual
change in hundreds of lives. But the saloons, dens, hovels, gambling houses,
still ran, overflowing their vileness into the lives of fresh victims to take
the place of those rescued by the evangelist. And the devil recruited his ranks
very fast.
Henry Maxwell did not go abroad. Instead of that, he took the money he had been
saving for the trip and quietly arranged for a summer vacation for a whole
family living down in the Rectangle, who had never gone outside of the foul
district of the tenements. The pastor of the First Church will never forget the
week he spent with this family making the arrangements. He went down into the
Rectangle one hot day when something of the terrible heat in the horrible
tenements was beginning to be felt, and helped the family to the station, and
then went with them to a beautiful spot on the coast where, in the home of a
Christian woman, the bewildered city tenants breathed for the first time in
years the cool salt air, and felt blow about them the pine-scented fragrance of
a new lease of life.
There was a sickly babe with the mother, and three other children, one a
cripple. The father, who had been out of work until he had been, as he
afterwards confessed to Maxwell, several times on the edge of suicide, sat with
the baby in his arms during the journey, and when Maxwell started back to
Raymond, after seeing the family settled, the man held his hand at parting, and
choked with his utterance, and finally broke down, to Maxwell's great confusion.
The mother, a wearied, worn-out woman who had lost three children the year
before from a fever scourge in the Rectangle, sat by the car window all the way
and drank in the delights of sea and sky and field. It all seemed a miracle to
her. And Maxwell, coming back into Raymond at the end of that week, feeling the
scorching, sickening heat all the more because of his little taste of the ocean
breezes, thanked God for the joy he had witnessed, and entered upon his
discipleship with a humble heart, knowing for almost the first time in his life
this special kind of sacrifice. For never before had he denied himself his
regular summer trip away from the heat of Raymond, whether he felt in any great
need of rest or not.
"It is a fact," he said in reply to several inquiries on the part of
his church, "I do not feel in need of a vacation this year. I am very well
and prefer to stay here." It was with a feeling of relief that he succeeded
in concealing from every one but his wife what he had done with this other
family. He felt the need of doing anything of that sort without display or
approval from others.
So the summer came on, and Maxwell grew into a large knowledge of his Lord. The
First Church was still swayed by the power of the Spirit. Maxwell marveled at
the continuance of His stay. He knew very well that from the beginning nothing
but the Spirit's presence had kept the church from being torn asunder by the
remarkable testing it had received of its discipleship. Even now there were many
of the members among those who had not taken the pledge, who regarded the whole
movement as Mrs. Winslow did, in the nature of a fanatical interpretation of
Christian duty, and looked for the return of the old normal condition. Meanwhile
the whole body of disciples was under the influence of the Spirit, and the
pastor went his way that summer, doing his parish work in great joy, keeping up
his meetings with the railroad men as he had promised Alexander Powers, and
daily growing into a better knowledge of the Master.
Early one afternoon in August, after a day of refreshing coolness following a
long period of heat, Jasper Chase walked to his window in the apartment house on
the avenue and looked out.
On his desk lay a pile of manuscript. Since that evening when he had spoken to
Rachel Winslow he had not met her. His singularly sensitive nature -- sensitive
to the point of extreme irritability when he was thwarted -- served to thrust
him into an isolation that was intensified by his habits as an author.
All through the heat of summer he had been writing. His book was nearly done
now. He had thrown himself into its construction with a feverish strength that
threatened at any moment to desert him and leave him helpless. He had not
forgotten his pledge made with the other church members at the First Church. It
had forced itself upon his notice all through his writing, and ever since Rachel
had said no to him, he had asked a thousand times, "Would Jesus do this?
Would He write this story?" It was a social novel, written in a style that
had proved popular. It had no purpose except to amuse. Its moral teaching was
not bad, but neither was it Christian in any positive way. Jasper Chase knew
that such a story would probably sell. He was conscious of powers in this way
that the social world petted and admired. "What would Jesus do?" He
felt that Jesus would never write such a book. The question obtruded on him at
the most inopportune times. He became irascible over it. The standard of Jesus
for an author was too ideal. Of course, Jesus would use His powers to produce
something useful or helpful, or with a purpose. What was he, Jasper Chase,
writing this novel for? Why, what nearly every writer wrote for -- money, money,
and fame as a writer. There was no secret with him that he was writing this new
story with that object. He was not poor, and so had no great temptation to write
for money. But he was urged on by his desire for fame as much as anything. He
must write this kind of matter. But what would Jesus do? The question plagued
him even more than Rachel's refusal. Was he going to break his promise?
"Did the promise mean much after all?" he asked.
As he stood at the window, Rollin Page came out of the club house just opposite.
Jasper noted his handsome face and noble figure as he started down the street.
He went back to his desk and turned over some papers there. Then he came back to
the window. Rollin was walking down past the block and Rachel Winslow was
walking beside him. Rollin must have overtaken her as she was coming from
Virginia's that afternoon.
Jasper watched the two figures until they disappeared in the crowd on the walk.
Then he turned to his desk and began to write. When he had finished the last
page of the last chapter of his book it was nearly dark. "What would Jesus
do?" He had finally answered the question by denying his Lord. It grew
darker in his room. He had deliberately chosen his course, urged on by his
disappointment and loss.
"But Jesus said unto him, no man having put his hand to the plow, and
looking back, is fit for the Kingdom of God."
Chapter Eighteen
"What is that to thee? Follow thou me."
WHEN Rollin started down the street the afternoon that Jasper stood looking out
of his window he was not thinking of Rachel Winslow and did not expect to see
her anywhere. He had come suddenly upon her as he turned into the avenue and his
heart had leaped up at the sight of her. He walked along by her now, rejoicing
after all in a little moment of this earthly love he could not drive out of his
life.
"I have just been over to see Virginia," said Rachel. "She tells
me the arrangements are nearly completed for the transfer of the Rectangle
property."
"Yes. It has been a tedious case in the courts. Did Virginia show you all
the plans and specifications for building?"
"We looked over a good many. It is astonishing to me where Virginia has
managed to get all her ideas about this work."
"Virginia knows more now about Arnold Toynbee and East End London and
Institutional Church work in America than a good many professional slum workers.
She has been spending nearly all summer in getting information." Rollin was
beginning to feel more at ease as they talked over this coming work of humanity.
It was safe, common ground.
"What have you been doing all summer? I have not seen much of you,"
Rachel suddenly asked, and then her face warmed with its quick flush of tropical
color as if she might have implied too much interest in Rollin or too much
regret at not seeing him oftener.
"I have been busy," replied Rollin briefly.
"Tell me something about it," persisted Rachel. "You say so
little. Have I a right to ask?"
She put the question very frankly, turning toward Rollin in real earnest.
"Yes, certainly," he replied, with a graceful smile. "I am not so
certain that I can tell you much. I have been trying to find some way to reach
the men I once knew and win them into more useful lives."
He stopped suddenly as if he were almost afraid to go on. Rachel did not venture
to suggest anything.
"I have been a member of the same company to which you and Virginia
belong," continued Rollin, beginning again. "I have made the pledge to
do as I believe Jesus would do, and it is in trying to answer this question that
I have been doing my work."
"That is what I do not understand. Virginia told me about the other. It
seems wonderful to think that you are trying to keep that pledge with us. But
what can you do with the club men?"
"You have asked me a direct question and I shall have to answer it
now," replied Rollin, smiling again. "You see, I asked myself after
that night at the tent, you remember" (he spoke hurriedly and his voice
trembled a little), "what purpose I could now have in my life to redeem it,
to satisfy my thought of Christian discipleship? And the more I thought of it,
the more I was driven to a place where I knew I must take up the cross. Did you
ever think that of all the neglected beings in our social system none are quite
so completely left alone as the fast young men who fill the clubs and waste
their time and money as I used to? The churches look after the poor, miserable
creatures like those in the Rectangle; they make some effort to reach the
working man, they have a large constituency among the average salary- earning
people, they send money and missionaries to the foreign heathen, but the
fashionable, dissipated young men around town, the club men, are left out of all
plans for reaching and Christianizing. And yet no class of people need it more.
I said to myself: 'I know these men, their good and their bad qualities. I have
been one of them. I am not fitted to reach the Rectangle people. I do not know
how. But I think I could possibly reach some of the young men and boys who have
money and time to spend.' So that is what I have been trying to do. When I asked
as you did, What would Jesus do?' that was my answer. It has been also my
cross."
Rollin's voice was so low on this last sentence that Rachel had difficulty in
hearing him above the noise around them, But she knew what he had said. She
wanted to ask what his methods were. But she did not know how to ask him. Her
interest in his plan was larger than mere curiosity. Rollin Page was so
different now from the fashionable young man who had asked her to be his wife
that she could not help thinking of him and talking with him as if he were an
entirely new acquaintance.
They had turned off the avenue and were going up the street to Rachel's home. It
was the same street where Rollin had asked Rachel why she could not love him.
They were both stricken with a sudden shyness as they went on. Rachel had not
forgotten that day and Rollin could not. She finally broke a long silence by
asking what she had not found words for before.
"In your work with the club men, with your old acquaintances, what sort of
reception do they give you? How do you approach them? What do they say?"
Rollin was relieved when Rachel spoke. He answered quickly: "Oh, it depends
on the man. A good many of them think I am a crank. I have kept my membership up
and am in good standing in that way. I try to be wise and not provoke any
unnecessary criticism. But you would be surprised to know how many of the men
have responded to my appeal. I could hardly make you believe that only a few
nights ago a dozen men became honestly and earnestly engaged in a conversation
over religious matters. I have had the great joy of seeing some of the men give
up bad habits and begin a new life. 'What would Jesus do?' I keep asking it. The
answer comes slowly, for I am feeling my way slowly. One thing I have found out.
The men are not fighting shy of me. I think that is a good sign. Another thing:
I have actually interested some of them in the Rectangle work, and when it is
started up they will give something to help make it more powerful. And in
addition to all the rest, I have found a way to save several of the young
fellows from going to the bad in gambling."
Rollin spoke with enthusiasm. His face was transformed by his interest in the
subject which had now become a part of his real life. Rachel again noted the
strong, manly tone of his speech. With it all she knew there was a deep,
underlying seriousness which felt the burden of the cross even while carrying it
with joy. The next time she spoke it was with a swift feeling of justice due to
Rollin and his new life.
"Do you remember I reproached you once for not having any purpose worth
living for?" she asked, while her beautiful face seemed to Rollin more
beautiful than ever when he had won sufficient self-control to look up. "I
want to say, I feel the need of saying, in justice to you now, that I honor you
for your courage and your obedience to the promise you have made as you
interpret the promise. The life you are living is a noble one."
Rollin trembled. His agitation was greater than he could control. Rachel could
not help seeing it. They walked along in silence. At last Rollin said: "I
thank you. It has been worth more to me than I can tell you to hear you say
that." He looked into her face for one moment. She read his love for her in
that look, but he did not speak.
When they separated Rachel went into the house and, sitting down in her room,
she put her face in her hands and said to herself: "I am beginning to know
what it means to be loved by a noble man. I shall love Rollin Page after all.
What am I saying! Rachel Winslow, have you forgotten -- "
She rose and walked back and forth. She was deeply moved. Nevertheless, it was
evident to herself that her emotion was not that of regret or sorrow. Somehow a
glad new joy had come to her. She had entered another circle of experience, and
later in the day she rejoiced with a very strong and sincere gladness that her
Christian discipleship found room in this crisis for her feeling. It was indeed
a part of it, for if she was beginning to love Rollin Page it was the Christian
man she had begun to love; the other never would have moved her to this great
change.
And Rollin, as he went back, treasured a hope that had been a stranger to him
since Rachel had said no that day. In that hope he went on with his work as the
days sped on, and at no time was he more successful in reaching and saving his
old acquaintances than in the time that followed that chance meeting with Rachel
Winslow.
The summer had gone and Raymond was once more facing the rigor of her winter
season. Virginia had been able to accomplish a part of her plan for
"capturing the Rectangle," as she called it. But the building of
houses in the field, the transforming of its bleak, bare aspect into an
attractive park, all of which was included in her plan, was a work too large to
be completed that fall after she had secured the property. But a million dollars
in the hands of a person who truly wants to do with it as Jesus would, ought to
accomplish wonders for humanity in a short time, and Henry Maxwell, going over
to the scene of the new work one day after a noon hour with the shop men, was
amazed to see how much had been done outwardly.
Yet he walked home thoughtfully, and on his way he could not avoid the question
of the continual problem thrust upon his notice by the saloon. How much had been
done for the Rectangle after all? Even counting Virginia's and Rachel's work and
Mr. Gray's, where had it actually counted in any visible quantity? Of course, he
said to himself, the redemptive work begun and carried on by the Holy Spirit in
His wonderful displays of power in the First Church and in the tent meetings had
had its effect upon the life of Raymond. But as he walked past saloon after
saloon and noted the crowds going in and coming out of them, as he saw the
wretched dens, as many as ever apparently, as he caught the brutality and
squalor and open misery and degradation on countless faces of men and women and
children, he sickened at the sight. He found himself asking how much cleansing
could a million dollars poured into this cesspool accomplish? Was not the living
source of nearly all the human misery they sought to relieve untouched as long
as the saloons did their deadly but legitimate work? What could even such
unselfish Christian discipleship as Virginia's and Rachel's do to lessen the
stream of vice and crime so long as the great spring of vice and crime flowed as
deep and strong as ever? Was it not a practical waste of beautiful lives for
these young women to throw themselves into this earthly hell, when for every
soul rescued by their sacrifice the saloon made two more that needed rescue?
He could not escape the question. It was the same that Virginia had put to
Rachel in her statement that, in her opinion, nothing really permanent would
ever be done until the saloon was taken out of the Rectangle. Henry Maxwell went
back to his parish work that afternoon with added convictions on the license
business.
But if the saloon was a factor in the problem of the life of Raymond, no less
was the First Church and its little company of disciples who had pledged to do
as Jesus would do. Henry Maxwell, standing at the very centre of the movement,
was not in a position to judge of its power as some one from the outside might
have done. But Raymond itself felt the touch in very many ways, not knowing all
the reasons for the change.
The winter was gone and the year was ended, the year which Henry Maxwell had
fixed as the time during which the pledge should be kept to do as Jesus would
do. Sunday, the anniversary of that one a year ago, was in many ways the most
remarkable day that the First Church ever knew. It was more important than the
disciples in the First Church realized. The year had made history so fast and so
serious that the people were not yet able to grasp its significance. And the day
itself which marked the completion of a whole year of such discipleship was
characterized by such revelations and confessions that the immediate actors in
the events themselves could not understand the value of what had been done, or
the relation of their trial to the rest of the churches and cities of the
country.
It happened that the week before that anniversary Sunday the Rev. Calvin Bruce,
D.D., of the Nazareth Avenue Church, Chicago, was in Raymond, where he had come
on a visit to some old friends, and incidentally to see his old seminary
classmate, Henry Maxwell. He was present at the First Church and was an
exceedingly attentive and interested spectator. His account of the events in
Raymond, and especially of that Sunday, may throw more light on the entire
situation than any description or record from other sources.
Chapter Nineteen
[Letter from Rev. Calvin Bruce, D.D., of the Nazareth Avenue Church, Chicago, to
Rev. Philip A. Caxton, D.D., New York City.]
"My Dear Caxton:
"It is late Sunday night, but I am so intensely awake and so overflowing
with what I have seen and heard that I feel driven to write you now some account
of the situation in Raymond as I have been studying it, and as it has apparently
come to a climax today. So this is my only excuse for writing so extended a
letter at this time.
"You remember Henry Maxwell in the Seminary. I think you said the last time
I visited you in New York that you had not seen him since we graduated. He was a
refined, scholarly fellow, you remember, and when he was called to the First
Church of Raymond within a year after leaving the Seminary, I said to my wife,
'Raymond has made a good choice. Maxwell will satisfy them as a sermonizer.' He
has been here eleven years, and I understand that up to a year ago he had gone
on in the regular course of the ministry, giving good satisfaction and drawing
good congregations. His church was counted the largest and wealthiest church in
Raymond. All the best people attended it, and most of them belonged. The quartet
choir was famous for its music, especially for its soprano, Miss Winslow, of
whom I shall have more to say; and, on the whole, as I understand the facts,
Maxwell was in a comfortable berth, with a very good salary, pleasant
surroundings, a not very exacting parish of refined, rich, respectable people --
such a church and parish as nearly all the young men of the seminary in our time
looked forward to as very desirable.
"But a year ago today Maxwell came into his church on Sunday morning, and
at the close of the service made the astounding proposition that the members of
his church volunteer for a year not to do anything without first asking the
question, 'What would Jesus do?' and, after answering it, to do what in their
honest judgment He would do, regardless of what the result might be to them.
"The effect of this proposition, as it has been met and obeyed by a number
of members of the church, has been so remarkable that, as you know, the
attention of the whole country has been directed to the movement. I call it a
'movement' because from the action taken today, it seems probable that what has
been tried here will reach out into the other churches and cause a revolution in
methods, but more especially in a new definition of Christian discipleship.
"In the first place, Maxwell tells me he was astonished at the response to
his proposition. Some of the most prominent members in the church made the
promise to do as Jesus would. Among them were Edward Norman, editor of the DAILY
NEWS, which has made such a sensation in the newspaper world; Milton Wright, one
of the leading merchants in Raymond; Alexander Powers, whose action in the
matter of the railroads against the interstate commerce laws made such a stir
about a year ago; Miss Page, one of Raymond's leading society heiresses, who has
lately dedicated her entire fortune, as I understand, to the Christian daily
paper and the work of reform in the slum district known as the Rectangle; and
Miss Winslow, whose reputation as a singer is now national, but who in obedience
to what she has decided to be Jesus' probable action, has devoted her talent to
volunteer work among the girls and women who make up a large part of the city's
worst and most abandoned population.
"In addition to these well-known people has been a gradually increasing
number of Christians from the First Church and lately from other churches of
Raymond. A large proportion of these volunteers who pledged themselves to do as
Jesus would do comes from the Endeavor societies. The young people say that they
have already embodied in their society pledge the same principle in the words,
'I promise Him that I will strive to do whatever He would have me do.' This is
not exactly what is included in Maxwell's proposition, which is that the
disciple shall try to do what Jesus would probably do in the disciple's place.
But the result of an honest obedience to either pledge, he claims, will be
practically the same, and he is not surprised that the largest numbers have
joined the new discipleship from the Endeavor Society.
"I am sure the first question you will ask is, 'What has been the result of
this attempt? What has it accomplished or how has it changed in any way the
regular life of the church or the community?'
"You already know something, from reports of Raymond that have gone over
the country, what the events have been. But one needs to come here and learn
something of the changes in individual lives, and especially the change in the
church life, to realize all that is meant by this following of Jesus' steps so
literally. To tell all that would be to write a long story or series of stories.
I am not in a position to do that, but I can give you some idea perhaps of what
has been done as told me by friends here and by Maxwell himself.
"The result of the pledge upon the First Church has been two-fold. It has
brought upon a spirit of Christian fellowship which Maxwell tells me never
before existed, and which now impresses him as being very nearly what the
Christian fellowship of the apostolic churches must have been; and it has
divided the church into two distinct groups of members. Those who have not taken
the pledge regard the others as foolishly literal in their attempt to imitate
the example of Jesus. Some of them have drawn out of the church and no longer
attend, or they have removed their membership entirely to other churches. Some
are an element of internal strife, and I heard rumors of an attempt on their
part to force Maxwell's resignation. I do not know that this element is very
strong in the church. It has been held in check by a wonderful continuance of
spiritual power, which dates from the first Sunday the pledge was taken a year
ago, and also by the fact that so many of the most prominent members have been
identified with the movement.
"The effect on Maxwell is very marked. I heard him preach in our State
Association four years ago. He impressed me at the time as having considerable
power in dramatic delivery, of which he himself was somewhat conscious. His
sermon was well written and abounded in what the Seminary students used to call
'fine passages.' The effect of it was what an average congregation would call
'pleasing.' This morning I heard Maxwell preach again, for the first time since
then. I shall speak of that farther on. He is not the same man. He gives me the
impression of one who has passed through a crisis of revolution. He tells me
this revolution is simply a new definition of Christian discipleship. He
certainly has changed many of his old habits and many of his old views. His
attitude on the saloon question is radically opposite to the one he entertained
a year ago. And in his entire thought of the ministry, his pulpit and parish
work, I find he has made a complete change. So far as I can understand, the idea
that is moving him on now is the idea that the Christianity of our times must
represent a more literal imitation of Jesus, and especially in the element of
suffering. He quoted to me in the course of our conversation several times the
verses in Peter: 'For even hereunto were ye called, because Christ also suffered
for you, leaving you an example, that ye would follow His steps'; and he seems
filled with the conviction that what our churches need today more than anything
else is this factor of joyful suffering for Jesus in some form. I do not know as
I agree with him, altogether; but, my dear Caxton, it is certainly astonishing
to note the results of this idea as they have impressed themselves upon this
city and this church.
"You ask how about the results on the individuals who have made this pledge
and honestly tried to be true to it. Those results are, as I have said, a part
of individual history and cannot be told in detail. Some of them I can give you
so that you may see that this form of discipleship is not merely sentiment or
fine posing for effect.
"For instance, take the case of Mr. Powers, who was superintendent of the
machine shops of the L. and T. R. R. here. When he acted upon the evidence which
incriminated the road he lost his position, and more than that, I learn from my
friends here, his family and social relations have become so changed that he and
his family no longer appear in public. They have dropped out of the social
circle where once they were so prominent. By the way, Caxton, I understand in
this connection that the Commission, for one reason or another, postponed action
on this case, and it is now rumored that the L. and T. R. R. will pass into a
receiver's hands very soon. The president of the road who, according to the
evidence submitted by Powers, was the principal offender, has resigned, and
complications which have risen since point to the receivership. Meanwhile, the
superintendent has gone back to his old work as a telegraph operator. I met him
at the church yesterday. He impressed me as a man who had, like Maxwell, gone
through a crisis in character. I could not help thinking of him as being good
material for the church of the first century when the disciples had all things
in common.
"Or take the case of Mr. Norman, editor of the DAILY NEWS. He risked his
entire fortune in obedience to what he believed was Jesus' action, and
revolutionized his entire conduct of the paper at the risk of a failure. I send
you a copy of yesterday's paper. I want you to read it carefully. To my mind it
is one of the most interesting and remarkable papers ever printed in the United
States. It is open to criticism, but what could any mere man attempt in this
line that would be free from criticism. Take it all in all, it is so far above
the ordinary conception of a daily paper that I am amazed at the result. He
tells me that the paper is beginning to be read more and more by the Christian
people of the city. He was very confident of its final success. Read his
editorial on the money questions, also the one on the coming election in Raymond
when the question of license will again be an issue. Both articles are of the
best from his point of view. He says he never begins an editorial or, in fact,
any part of his newspaper work, without first asking, 'What would Jesus do?' The
result is certainly apparent.
"Then there is Milton Wright, the merchant. He has, I am told, so
revolutionized his business that no man is more beloved today in Raymond. His
own clerks and employees have an affection for him that is very touching. During
the winter, while he was lying dangerously ill at his home, scores of clerks
volunteered to watch and help in any way possible, and his return to his store
was greeted with marked demonstrations. All this has been brought about by the
element of personal love introduced into the business. This love is not mere
words, but the business itself is carried on under a system of co-operation that
is not a patronizing recognition of inferiors, but a real sharing in the whole
business. Other men on the street look upon Milton Wright as odd. It is a fact,
however, that while he has lost heavily in some directions, he has increased his
business, and is today respected and honored as one of the best and most
successful merchants in Raymond.
"And there is Miss Winslow. She has chosen to give her great talent to the
poor of the city. Her plans include a Musical Institute where choruses and
classes in vocal music shall be a feature. She is enthusiastic over her life
work. In connection with her friend Miss Page she has planned a course in music
which, if carried out, will certainly do much to lift up the lives of the people
down there. I am not too old, dear Caxton, to be interested in the romantic side
of much that has also been tragic here in Raymond, and I must tell you that it
is well understood here that Miss Winslow expects to be married this spring to a
brother of Miss Page who was once a society leader and club man, and who was
converted in a tent where his wife-that-is-to-be took an active part in the
service. I don't know all the details of this little romance, but I imagine
there is a story wrapped up in it, and it would make interesting reading if we
only knew it all.
"These are only a few illustrations of results in individual lives owing to
obedience to the pledge. I meant to have spoken of President Marsh of Lincoln
College. He is a graduate of my alma mater and I knew him slightly when I was in
the senior year. He has taken an active part in the recent municipal campaign,
and his influence in the city is regarded as a very large factor in the coming
election. He impressed me, as did all the other disciples in this movement, as
having fought out some hard questions, and as having taken up some real burdens
that have caused and still do cause that suffering of which Henry Maxwell
speaks, a suffering that does not eliminate, but does appear to intensify, a
positive and practical joy.
Chapter Twenty
"BUT I am prolonging this letter, possibly to your weariness. I am unable
to avoid the feeling of fascination which my entire stay here has increased. I
want to tell you something of the meeting in the First Church today.
"As I said, I heard Maxwell preach. At his earnest request I had preached
for him the Sunday before, and this was the first time I had heard him since the
Association meeting four years ago. His sermon this morning was as different
from his sermon then as if it had been thought out and preached by some one
living on another planet. I was profoundly touched. I believe I actually shed
tears once. Others in the congregation were moved like myself. His text was:
'What is that to thee? Follow thou Me.' It was a most unusually impressive
appeal to the Christians of Raymond to obey Jesus' teachings and follow in His
steps regardless of what others might do. I cannot give you even the plan of the
sermon. It would take too long. At the close of the service there was the usual
after meeting that has become a regular feature of the First Church. Into this
meeting have come all those who made the pledge to do as Jesus would do, and the
time is spent in mutual fellowship, confession, question as to what Jesus would
do in special cases, and prayer that the one great guide of every disciple's
conduct may be the Holy Spirit.
"Maxwell asked me to come into this meeting. Nothing in all my ministerial
life, Caxton, has so moved me as that meeting. I never felt the Spirit's
presence so powerfully. It was a meeting of reminiscences and of the most loving
fellowship. I was irresistibly driven in thought back to the first years of
Christianity. There was something about all this that was apostolic in its
simplicity and Christ imitation.
"I asked questions. One that seemed to arouse more interest than any other
was in regard to the extent of the Christian disciple's sacrifice of personal
property. Maxwell tells me that so far no one has interpreted the spirit of
Jesus in such a way as to abandon his earthly possessions, give away of his
wealth, or in any literal way imitate the Christians of the order, for example,
of St. Francis of Assisi. It was the unanimous consent, however, that if any
disciple should feel that Jesus in his own particular case would do that, there
could be only one answer to the question. Maxwell admitted that he was still to
a certain degree uncertain as to Jesus' probable action when it came to the
details of household living, the possession of wealth, the holding of certain
luxuries. It is, however, very evident that many of these disciples have
repeatedly carried their obedience to Jesus to the extreme limit, regardless of
financial loss. There is no lack of courage or consistency at this point.
"It is also true that some of the business men who took the pledge have
lost great sums of money in this imitation of Jesus, and many have, like
Alexander Powers, lost valuable positions owing to the impossibility of doing
what they had been accustomed to do and at the same time what they felt Jesus
would do in the same place. In connection with these cases it is pleasant to
record the fact that many who have suffered in this way have been at once helped
financially by those who still have means. In this respect I think it is true
that these disciples have all things in common. Certainly such scenes as I
witnessed at the First Church at that after service this morning I never saw in
my church or in any other. I never dreamed that such Christian fellowship could
exist in this age of the world. I was almost incredulous as to the witness of my
own senses. I still seem to be asking myself if this is the close of the
nineteenth century in America.
"But now, dear friend, I come to the real cause of this letter, the real
heart of the whole question as the First Church of Raymond has forced it upon
me. Before the meeting closed today steps were taken to secure the co-operation
of all other Christian disciples in this country. I think Maxwell took this step
after long deliberation. He said as much to me one day when we were discussing
the effect of this movement upon the church in general.
"'Why,' he said, 'suppose that the church membership generally in this
country made this pledge and lived up to it! What a revolution it would cause in
Christendom! But why not? Is it any more than the disciple ought to do? Has he
followed Jesus, unless he is willing to do this? Is the test of discipleship any
less today than it was in Jesus' time?'
"I do not know all that preceded or followed his thought of what ought to
be done outside of Raymond, but the idea crystallized today in a plan to secure
the fellowship of all the Christians in America. The churches, through their
pastors, will be asked to form disciple gatherings like the one in the First
Church. Volunteers will be called for in the great body of church members in the
United States, who will promise to do as Jesus would do. Maxwell spoke
particularly of the result of such general action on the saloon question. He is
terribly in earnest over this. He told me that there was no question in his mind
that the saloon would be beaten in Raymond at the election now near at hand. If
so, they could go on with some courage to do the redemptive work begun by the
evangelist and now taken up by the disciples in his own church. If the saloon
triumphs again there will be a terrible and, as he thinks, unnecessary waste of
Christian sacrifice. But, however we differ on that point, he convinced his
church that the time had come for a fellowship with other Christians. Surely, if
the First Church could work such changes in society and its surroundings, the
church in general if combining such a fellowship, not of creed but of conduct,
ought to stir the entire nation to a higher life and a new conception of
Christian following.
"This is a grand idea, Caxton, but right here is where I find my self
hesitating. I do not deny that the Christian disciple ought to follow Christ's
steps as closely as these here in Raymond have tried to do. But I cannot avoid
asking what the result would be if I ask my church in Chicago to do it. I am
writing this after feeling the solemn, profound touch of the Spirit's presence,
and I confess to you, old friend, that I cannot call up in my church a dozen
prominent business or professional men who would make this trial at the risk of
all they hold dear. Can you do any better in your church? What are we to say?
That the churches would not respond to the call: 'Come and suffer?' Is our
standard of Christian discipleship a wrong one? Or are we possibly deceiving
ourselves, and would we be agreeably disappointed if we once asked our people to
take such a pledge faithfully? The actual results of the pledge as obeyed here
in Raymond are enough to make any pastor tremble, and at the same time long with
yearning that they might occur in his own parish. Certainly never have I seen a
church so signally blessed by the Spirit as this one. But -- am I myself ready
to take this pledge? I ask the question honestly, and I dread to face an honest
answer. I know well enough that I should have to change very much in my life if
I undertook to follow His steps so closely. I have called myself a Christian for
many years. For the past ten years I have enjoyed a life that has had
comparatively little suffering in it. I am, honestly I say it, living at a long
distance from municipal problems and the life of the poor, the degraded and the
abandoned. What would the obedience to this pledge demand of me? I hesitate to
answer. My church is wealthy, full of well-to-do, satisfied people. The standard
of their discipleship is, I am aware, not of a nature to respond to the call of
suffering or personal loss. I say: 'I am aware.' I may be mistaken. I may have
erred in not stirring their deeper life. Caxton, my friend, I have spoken my
inmost thought to you. Shall I go back to my people next Sunday and stand up
before them in my large city church and say: 'Let us follow Jesus closer; let us
walk in His steps where it will cost us something more than it is costing us
now; let us pledge not to do anything without first asking: 'What would Jesus
do?' If I should go before them with that message, it would be a strange and
startling one to them. But why? Are we not ready to follow Him all the way? What
is it to be a follower of Jesus? What does it mean to imitate Him? What does it
mean to walk in His steps?"
The Rev. Calvin Bruce, D. D., of the Nazareth Avenue Church, Chicago, let his
pen fall on the table. He had come to the parting of the ways, and his question,
he felt sure, was the question of many and many a man in the ministry and in the
church. He went to his window and opened it. He was oppressed with the weight of
his convictions and he felt almost suffocated with the air in the room. He
wanted to see the stars and feel the breath of the world.
The night was very still. The clock in the First Church was just striking
midnight. As it finished a clear, strong voice down in the direction of the
Rectangle came floating up to him as if borne on radiant pinions.
It was a voice of one of Gray's old converts, a night watchman at the packing
houses, who sometimes solaced his lonesome hours by a verse or two of some
familiar hymn:
"Must Jesus bear the cross alone
And all the world go free?
No, there's a cross for every one,
And there's a cross for me."
The Rev. Calvin Bruce turned away from the window and, after a little
hesitation, he kneeled. "What would Jesus do?" That was the burden of
his prayer. Never had he yielded himself so completely to the Spirit's searching
revealing of Jesus. He was on his knees a long time. He retired and slept
fitfully with many awakenings. He rose before it was clear dawn, and threw open
his window again. As the light in the east grew stronger he repeated to himself:
"What would Jesus do? Shall I follow His steps?"
The sun rose and flooded the city with its power. When shall the dawn of a new
discipleship usher in the conquering triumph of a closer walk with Jesus? When
shall Christendom tread more closely the path he made?
"It is the way the Master trod;
Shall not the servant tread it still?"
With this question throbbing through his whole being, the Rev. Calvin Bruce, D.
D., went back to Chicago, and the great crisis in his Christian life in the
ministry suddenly broke irresistibly upon him.
Chapter Twenty-one
"Master, I will follow Thee whithersoever Thou goest."
THE Saturday afternoon matinee at the Auditorium in Chicago was just over and
the usual crowd was struggling to get to its carriage before any one else. The
Auditorium attendant was shouting out the numbers of different carriages and the
carriage doors were slamming as the horses were driven rapidly up to the curb,
held there impatiently by the drivers who had shivered long in the raw east
wind, and then let go to plunge for a few minutes into the river of vehicles
that tossed under the elevated railway and finally went whirling off up the
avenue.
"Now then, 624," shouted the Auditorium attendant; "624!" he
repeated, and there dashed up to the curb a splendid span of black horses
attached to a carriage having the monogram, "C. R. S." in gilt letters
on the panel of the door.
Two girls stepped out of the crowd towards the carriage. The older one had
entered and taken her seat and the attendant was still holding the door open for
the younger, who stood hesitating on the curb.
"Come, Felicia! What are you waiting for! I shall freeze to death!"
called the voice from the carriage.
The girl outside of the carriage hastily unpinned a bunch of English violets
from her dress and handed them to a small boy who was standing shivering on the
edge of the sidewalk almost under the horses' feet. He took them, with a look of
astonishment and a "Thank ye, lady!" and instantly buried a very grimy
face in the bunch of perfume. The girl stepped into the carriage, the door shut
with the incisive bang peculiar to well-made carriages of this sort, and in a
few moments the coachman was speeding the horses rapidly up one of the
boulevards.
"You are always doing some queer thing or other, Felicia," said the
older girl as the carriage whirled on past the great residences already
brilliantly lighted.
"Am I? What have I done that is queer now, Rose?" asked the other,
looking up suddenly and turning her head towards her sister.
"Oh, giving those violets to that boy! He looked as if he needed a good hot
supper more than a bunch of violets. It's a wonder you didn't invite him home
with us. I shouldn't have been surprised if you had. You are always doing such
queer things."
"Would it be queer to invite a boy like that to come to the house and get a
hot supper?" Felicia asked the question softly and almost as if she were
alone.
"'Queer' isn't just the word, of course," replied Rose indifferently.
"It would be what Madam Blanc calls 'outre.' Decidedly. Therefore you will
please not invite him or others like him to hot suppers because I suggested it.
Oh, dear! I'm awfully tired."
She yawned, and Felicia silently looked out of the window in the door.
"The concert was stupid and the violinist was simply a bore. I don't see
how you could sit so still through it all," Rose exclaimed a little
impatiently.
"I liked the music," answered Felicia quietly.
"You like anything. I never saw a girl with so little critical taste."
Felicia colored slightly, but would not answer. Rose yawned again, and then
hummed a fragment of a popular song. Then she exclaimed abruptly: "I'm sick
of 'most everything. I hope the 'Shadows of London' will be exciting
tonight."
"The 'Shadows of Chicago,'" murmured Felicia. "The 'Shadows of
Chicago!' The 'Shadows of London,' the play, the great drama with its wonderful
scenery, the sensation of New York for two months. You know we have a box with
the Delanos tonight."
Felicia turned her face towards her sister. Her great brown eyes were very
expressive and not altogether free from a sparkle of luminous heat.
"And yet we never weep over the real thing on the actual stage of life.
What are the 'Shadows of London' on the stage to the shadows of London or
Chicago as they really exist? Why don't we get excited over the facts as they
are?"
"Because the actual people are dirty and disagreeable and it's too much
bother, I suppose," replied Rose carelessly. "Felicia, you can never
reform the world. What's the use? We're not to blame for the poverty and misery.
There have always been rich and poor; and there always will be. We ought to be
thankful we're rich."
"Suppose Christ had gone on that principle," replied Felicia, with
unusual persistence. "Do you remember Dr. Bruce's sermon on that verse a
few Sundays ago: 'For ye know the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, that though he
was rich yet for our sakes he became poor, that ye through his poverty might
become rich'?"
"I remember it well enough," said Rose with some petulance, "and
didn't Dr. Bruce go on to say that there is no blame attached to people who have
wealth if they are kind and give to the needs of the poor? And I am sure that he
himself is pretty comfortably settled. He never gives up his luxuries just
because some people go hungry. What good would it do if he did? I tell you,
Felicia, there will always be poor and rich in spite of all we can do. Ever
since Rachel Winslow has written about those queer doings in Raymond you have
upset the whole family. People can't live at that concert pitch all the time.
You see if Rachel doesn't give it up soon. It's a great pity she doesn't come to
Chicago and sing in the Auditorium concerts. She has received an offer. I'm
going to write and urge her to come. I'm just dying to hear her sing."
Felicia looked out of the window and was silent. The carriage rolled on past two
blocks of magnificent private residences and turned into a wide driveway under a
covered passage, and the sisters hurried into the house. It was an elegant
mansion of gray stone furnished like a palace, every corner of it warm with the
luxury of paintings, sculpture, art and modern refinement.
The owner of it all, Mr. Charles R. Sterling, stood before an open grate fire
smoking a cigar. He had made his money in grain speculation and railroad
ventures, and was reputed to be worth something over two millions. His wife was
a sister of Mrs. Winslow of Raymond. She had been an invalid for several years.
The two girls, Rose and Felicia, were the only children. Rose was twenty-one
years old, fair, vivacious, educated in a fashionable college, just entering
society and already somewhat cynical and indifferent. A very hard young lady to
please, her father said, sometimes playfully, sometimes sternly. Felicia was
nineteen, with a tropical beauty somewhat like her cousin, Rachel Winslow, with
warm, generous impulses just waking into Christian feeling, capable of all sorts
of expression, a puzzle to her father, a source of irritation to her mother and
with a great unsurveyed territory of thought and action in herself, of which she
was more than dimly conscious. There was that in Felicia that would easily
endure any condition in life if only the liberty to act fully on her
conscientious convictions were granted her.
"Here's a letter for you, Felicia," said Mr. Sterling, handing it to
her.
Felicia sat down and instantly opened the letter, saying as she did so:
"It's from Rachel."
"Well, what's the latest news from Raymond?" asked Mr. Sterling,
taking his cigar out of his mouth and looking at Felicia with half-shut eyes, as
if he were studying her.
"Rachel says Dr. Bruce has been staying in Raymond for two Sundays and has
seemed very much interested in Mr. Maxwell's pledge in the First Church."
"What does Rachel say about herself?" asked Rose, who was lying on a
couch almost buried under elegant cushions.
"She is still singing at the Rectangle. Since the tent meetings closed she
sings in an old hall until the new buildings which her friend, Virginia Page, is
putting up are completed.
"I must write Rachel to come to Chicago and visit us. She ought not to
throw away her voice in that railroad town upon all those people who don't
appreciate her."
Mr. Sterling lighted a new cigar and Rose exclaimed: "Rachel is so queer.
She might set Chicago wild with her voice if she sang in the Auditorium. And
there she goes on throwing it away on people who don't know what they are
hearing."
"Rachel won't come here unless she can do it and keep her pledge at the
same time," said Felicia, after a pause.
"What pledge?" Mr. Sterling asked the question and then added hastily:
"Oh, I know, yes! A very peculiar thing that. Alexander Powers used to be a
friend of mine. We learned telegraphy in the same office. Made a great sensation
when he resigned and handed over that evidence to the Interstate Commerce
Commission. And he's back at his telegraph again. There have been queer doings
in Raymond during the past year. I wonder what Dr. Bruce thinks of it on the
whole. I must have a talk with him about it."
"He is at home and will preach tomorrow," said Felicia. "Perhaps
he will tell us something about it."
There was silence for a minute. Then Felicia said abruptly, as if she had gone
on with a spoken thought to some invisible hearer: "And what if he should
propose the same pledge to the Nazareth Avenue Church?"
"Who? What are you talking about?" asked her father a little sharply.
"About Dr. Bruce. I say, what if he should propose to our church what Mr.
Maxwell proposed to his, and ask for volunteers who would pledge themselves to
do everything after asking the question, 'What would Jesus do?'"
"There's no danger of it," said Rose, rising suddenly from the couch
as the tea-bell rang.
"It's a very impracticable movement, to my mind," said Mr. Sterling
shortly.
"I understand from Rachel's letter that the Raymond church is going to make
an attempt to extend the idea of the pledge to other churches. If it succeeds it
will certainly make great changes in the churches and in people's lives,"
said Felicia.
"Oh, well, let's have some tea first!" said Rose, walking into the
dining-room. Her father and Felicia followed, and the meal proceeded in silence.
Mrs. Sterling had her meals served in her room. Mr. Sterling was preoccupied. He
ate very little and excused himself early, and although it was Saturday night,
he remarked as he went out that he should be down town on some special business.
"Don't you think father looks very much disturbed lately?" asked
Felicia a little while after he had gone out.
"Oh, I don't know! I hadn't noticed anything unusual," replied Rose.
After a silence she said: "Are you going to the play tonight, Felicia? Mrs.
Delano will be here at half past seven. I think you ought to go. She will feel
hurt if you refuse."
"I'll go. I don't care about it. I can see shadows enough without going to
the play."
"That's a doleful remark for a girl nineteen years old to make,"
replied Rose. "But then you're queer in your ideas anyhow, Felicia. If you
are going up to see mother, tell her I'll run in after the play if she is still
awake."
Felicia went up to see her mother and remained with her until the Delano
carriage came. Mrs. Sterling was worried about her husband. She talked
incessantly, and was irritated by every remark Felicia made. She would not
listen to Felicia's attempts to read even a part of Rachel's letter, and when
Felicia offered to stay with her for the evening, she refused the offer with a
good deal of positive sharpness.
Chapter Twenty-two
FELICIA started off to the play not very happy, but she was familiar with that
feeling, only sometimes she was more unhappy than at others. Her feeling
expressed itself tonight by a withdrawal into herself. When the company was
seated in the box and the curtain had gone up Felicia was back of the others and
remained for the evening by herself. Mrs. Delano, as chaperon for half a dozen
young ladies, understood Felicia well enough to know that she was
"queer," as Rose so often said, and she made no attempt to draw her
out of her corner. And so the girl really experienced that night by herself one
of the feelings that added to the momentum that was increasing the coming on of
her great crisis.
The play was an English melodrama, full of startling situations, realistic
scenery and unexpected climaxes. There was one scene in the third act that
impressed even Rose Sterling.
It was midnight on Blackfriars Bridge. The Thames flowed dark and forbidden
below. St. Paul's rose through the dim light imposing, its dome seeming to float
above the buildings surrounding it. The figure of a child came upon the bridge
and stood there for a moment peering about as if looking for some one. Several
persons were crossing the bridge, but in one of the recesses about midway of the
river a woman stood, leaning out over the parapet, with a strained agony of face
and figure that told plainly of her intention. Just as she was stealthily
mounting the parapet to throw herself into the river, the child caught sight of
her, ran forward with a shrill cry more animal than human, and seizing the
woman's dress dragged back upon it with all her little strength. Then there came
suddenly upon the scene two other characters who had already figured in the
play, a tall, handsome, athletic gentleman dressed in the fashion, attended by a
slim-figured lad who was as refined in dress and appearance as the little girl
clinging to her mother, who was mournfully hideous in her rags and repulsive
poverty. These two, the gentleman and the lad, prevented the attempted suicide,
and after a tableau on the bridge where the audience learned that the man and
woman were brother and sister, the scene was transferred to the interior of one
of the slum tenements in the East Side of London. Here the scene painter and
carpenter had done their utmost to produce an exact copy of a famous court and
alley well known to the poor creatures who make up a part of the outcast London
humanity. The rags, the crowding, the vileness, the broken furniture, the
horrible animal existence forced upon creatures made in God's image were so
skilfully shown in this scene that more than one elegant woman in the theatre,
seated like Rose Sterling in a sumptuous box surrounded with silk hangings and
velvet covered railing, caught herself shrinking back a little as if
contamination were possible from the nearness of this piece of scenery. It was
almost too realistic, and yet it had a horrible fascination for Felicia as she
sat there alone, buried back in a cushioned seat and absorbed in thoughts that
went far beyond the dialogue on the stage.
From the tenement scene the play shifted to the interior of a nobleman's palace,
and almost a sigh of relief went up all over the house at the sight of the
accustomed luxury of the upper classes. The contrast was startling. It was
brought about by a clever piece of staging that allowed only a few moments to
elapse between the slum and the palace scene. The dialogue went on, the actors
came and went in their various roles, but upon Felicia the play made but one
distinct impression. In realty the scenes on the bridge and in the slums were
only incidents in the story of the play, but Felicia found herself living those
scenes over and over. She had never philosophized about the causes of human
misery, she was not old enough she had not the temperament that philosophizes.
But she felt intensely, and this was not the first time she had felt the
contrast thrust into her feeling between the upper and the lower conditions of
human life. It had been growing upon her until it had made her what Rose called
"queer," and other people in her circle of wealthy acquaintances
called very unusual. It was simply the human problem in its extreme of riches
and poverty, its refinement and its vileness, that was, in spite of her
unconscious attempts to struggle against the facts, burning into her life the
impression that would in the end either transform her into a woman of rare love
and self-sacrifice for the world, or a miserable enigma to herself and all who
knew her.
"Come, Felicia, aren't you going home?" said Rose. The play was over,
the curtain down, and people were going noisily out, laughing and gossiping as
if "The Shadows of London" were simply good diversion, as they were,
put on the stage so effectively.
Felicia rose and went out with the rest quietly, and with the absorbed feeling
that had actually left her in her seat oblivious of the play's ending. She was
never absent-minded, but often thought herself into a condition that left her
alone in the midst of a crowd.
"Well, what did you think of it?" asked Rose when the sisters had
reached home and were in the drawing-room. Rose really had considerable respect
for Felicia's judgment of a play.
"I thought it was a pretty fair picture of real life."
"I mean the acting," said Rose, annoyed.
"The bridge scene was well acted, especially the woman's part. I thought
the man overdid the sentiment a little."
"Did you? I enjoyed that. And wasn't the scene between the two cousins
funny when they first learned they were related? But the slum scene was
horrible. I think they ought not to show such things in a play. They are too
painful."
"They must be painful in real life, too," replied Felicia.
"Yes, but we don't have to look at the real thing. It's bad enough at the
theatre where we pay for it."
Rose went into the dining-room and began to eat from a plate of fruit and cakes
on the sideboard.
"Are you going up to see mother?" asked Felicia after a while. She had
remained in front of the drawing-room fireplace.
"No," replied Rose from the other room. "I won't trouble her
tonight. If you go in tell her I am too tired to be agreeable."
So Felicia turned into her mother's room, as she went up the great staircase and
down the upper hall. The light was burning there, and the servant who always
waited on Mrs. Sterling was beckoning Felicia to come in.
"Tell Clara to go out," exclaimed Mrs. Sterling as Felicia came up to
the bed.
Felicia was surprised, but she did as her mother bade her, and then inquired how
she was feeling.
"Felicia," said her mother, "can you pray?"
The question was so unlike any her mother had ever asked before that she was
startled. But she answered: "Why, yes, mother. Why do you ask such a
question?"
"Felicia, I am frightened. Your father -- I have had such strange fears
about him all day. Something is wrong with him. I want you to pray -- ."
"Now, here, mother?"
"Yes. Pray, Felicia."
Felicia reached out her hand and took her mother's. It was trembling. Mrs.
Sterling had never shown such tenderness for her younger daughter, and her
strange demand now was the first real sign of any confidence in Felicia's
character.
The girl kneeled, still holding her mother's trembling hand, and prayed. It is
doubtful if she had ever prayed aloud before. She must have said in her prayer
the words that her mother needed, for when it was silent in the room the invalid
was weeping softly and her nervous tension was over.
Felicia stayed some time. When she was assured that her mother would not need
her any longer she rose to go.
"Good night, mother. You must let Clara call me if you feel badly in the
night."
"I feel better now." Then as Felicia was moving away, Mrs. Sterling
said: "Won't you kiss me, Felicia?"
Felicia went back and bent over her mother. The kiss was almost as strange to
her as the prayer had been. When Felicia went out of the room her cheeks were
wet with tears. She had not often cried since she was a little child.
Sunday morning at the Sterling mansion was generally very quiet. The girls
usually went to church at eleven o'clock service. Mr. Sterling was not a member
but a heavy contributor, and he generally went to church in the morning. This
time he did not come down to breakfast, and finally sent word by a servant that
he did not feel well enough to go out. So Rose and Felicia drove up to the door
of the Nazareth Avenue Church and entered the family pew alone.
When Dr. Bruce walked out of the room at the rear of the platform and went up to
the pulpit to open the Bible as his custom was, those who knew him best did not
detect anything unusual in his manner or his expression. He proceeded with the
service as usual. He was calm and his voice was steady and firm. His prayer was
the first intimation the people had of anything new or strange in the service.
It is safe to say that the Nazareth Avenue Church had not heard Dr. Bruce offer
such a prayer before during the twelve years he had been pastor there. How would
a minister be likely to pray who had come out of a revolution in Christian
feeling that had completely changed his definition of what was meant by
following Jesus? No one in Nazareth Avenue Church had any idea that the Rev.
Calvin Bruce, D. D., the dignified, cultured, refined Doctor of Divinity, had
within a few days been crying like a little child on his knees, asking for
strength and courage and Christlikeness to speak his Sunday message; and yet the
prayer was an unconscious involuntary disclosure of his soul's experience such
as the Nazareth Avenue people had seldom heard, and never before from that
pulpit.
In the hush that succeeded the prayer a distinct wave of spiritual power moved
over the congregation. The most careless persons in the church felt it. Felicia,
whose sensitive religious nature responded swiftly to every touch of emotion,
quivered under the passing of that supernatural pressure, and when she lifted
her head and looked up at the minister there was a look in her eyes that
announced her intense, eager anticipation of the scene that was to follow. And
she was not alone in her attitude. There was something in the prayer and the
result of it that stirred many and many a disciple in that church. All over the
house men and women leaned forward, and when Dr. Bruce began to speak of his
visit to Raymond, in the opening sentence of his address which this morning
preceded his sermon, there was an answering response in the people that came
back to him as he spoke, and thrilled him with the hope of a spiritual baptism
such as he had never during all his ministry experienced.
Chapter Twenty-three
"I AM just back from a visit to Raymond," Dr. Bruce began, "and I
want to tell you something of my impressions of the movement there."
He paused and his look went out over his people with yearning for them and at
the same time with a great uncertainty at his heart. How many of his rich,
fashionable, refined, luxury-loving members would understand the nature of the
appeal he was soon to make to them? He was altogether in the dark as to that.
Nevertheless he had been through his desert, and had come out of it ready to
suffer. He went on now after that brief pause and told them the story of his
stay in Raymond. The people already knew something of that experiment in the
First Church. The whole country had watched the progress of the pledge as it had
become history in so many lives. Mr. Maxwell had at last decided that the time
had come to seek the fellowship of other churches throughout the country. The
new discipleship in Raymond had proved to be so valuable in its results that he
wished the churches in general to share with the disciples in Raymond. Already
there had begun a volunteer movement in many churches throughout the country,
acting on their own desire to walk closer in the steps of Jesus. The Christian
Endeavor Society had, with enthusiasm, in many churches taken the pledge to do
as Jesus would do, and the result was already marked in a deeper spiritual life
and a power in church influence that was like a new birth for the members.
All this Dr. Bruce told his people simply and with a personal interest that
evidently led the way to the announcement which now followed. Felicia had
listened to every word with strained attention. She sat there by the side of
Rose, in contrast like fire beside snow, although even Rose was alert and as
excited as she could be.
"Dear friends," he said, and for the first time since his prayer the
emotion of the occasion was revealed in his voice and gesture, "I am going
to ask that Nazareth Avenue Church take the same pledge that Raymond Church has
taken. I know what this will mean to you and me. It will mean the complete
change of very many habits. It will mean, possibly, social loss. It will mean
very probably, in many cases, loss of money. It will mean suffering. It will
mean what following Jesus meant in the first century, and then it meant
suffering, loss, hardship, separation from everything un-Christian. But what
does following Jesus mean? The test of discipleship is the same now as then.
Those of us who volunteer in this church to do as Jesus would do, simply promise
to walk in His steps as He gave us commandment."
Again he paused, and now the result of his announcement was plainly visible in
the stir that went up over the, congregation. He added in a quiet voice that all
who volunteered to make the pledge to do as Jesus would do, were asked to remain
after the morning service.
Instantly he proceeded with his sermon. His text was, "Master, I will
follow Thee whithersoever Thou goest." It was a sermon that touched the
deep springs of conduct; it was a revelation to the people of the definition
their pastor had been learning; it took them back to the first century of
Christianity; above all, it stirred them below the conventional thought of years
as to the meaning and purpose of church membership. It was such a sermon as a
man can preach once in a lifetime, and with enough in it for people to live on
all through the rest of their lifetime.
The service closed in a hush that was slowly broken. People rose here and there,
a few at a time. There was a reluctance in the movements of some that was very
striking. Rose, however, walked straight out of the pew, and as she reached the
aisle she turned her head and beckoned to Felicia. By that time the congregation
was rising all over the church. "I am going to stay," she said, and
Rose had heard her speak in the same manner on other occasions, and knew that
her resolve could not be changed. Nevertheless she went back into the pew two or
three steps and faced her.
"Felicia," she whispered, and there was a flush of anger on her
cheeks, "this is folly. What can you do? You will bring some disgrace on
the family. What will father say? Come!"
Felicia looked at her but did not answer at once. Her lips were moving with a
petition that came from the depth of feeling that measured a new life for her.
She shocked her head.
"No, I am going to stay. I shall take the pledge. I am ready to obey it.
You do not know why I am doing this."
Rose gave her one look and then turned and went out of the pew, and down the
aisle. She did not even stop to talk with her acquaintances. Mrs. Delano was
going out of the church just as Rose stepped into the vestibule.
"So you are not going to join Dr. Bruce's volunteer company?" Mrs.
Delano asked, in a queer tone that made Rose redden.
"No, are you? It is simply absurd. I have always regarded that Raymond
movement as fanatical. You know cousin Rachel keeps us posted about it."
"Yes, I understand it is resulting in a great deal of hardship in many
cases. For my part, I believe Dr. Bruce has simply provoked disturbance here. It
will result in splitting our church. You see if it isn't so. There are scores of
people in the church who are so situated that they can't take such a pledge and
keep it. I am one of them," added Mrs. Delano as she went out with Rose.
When Rose reached home, her father was standing in his usual attitude before the
open fireplace, smoking a cigar.
"Where is Felicia?" he asked as Rose came in.
"She stayed to an after-meeting," replied Rose shortly. She threw off
her wraps and was going upstairs when Mr. Sterling called after her.
"An after-meeting? What do you mean?"
"Dr. Bruce asked the church to take the Raymond pledge."
Mr. Sterling took his cigar out of his mouth and twirled it nervously between
his fingers.
"I didn't expect that of Dr. Bruce. Did many of the members stay?"
"I don't know. I didn't," replied Rose, and she went upstairs leaving
her father standing in the drawing-room.
After a few moments he went to the window and stood there looking out at the
people driving on the boulevard. His cigar had gone out, but he still fingered
it nervously. Then he turned from the window and walked up and down the room. A
servant stepped across the hall and announced dinner and he told her to wait for
Felicia. Rose came downstairs and went into the library. And still Mr. Sterling
paced the drawing-room restlessly.
He had finally wearied of the walking apparently, and throwing himself into a
chair was brooding over something deeply when Felicia came in.
He rose and faced her. Felicia was evidently very much moved by the meeting from
which she had just come. At the same time she did not wish to talk too much
about it. Just as she entered the drawing-room, Rose came in from the library.
"How many stayed?" she asked. Rose was curious. At the same time she
was skeptical of the whole movement in Raymond.
"About a hundred," replied Felicia gravely. Mr. Sterling looked
surprised. Felicia was going out of the room, but he called to her: "Do you
really mean to keep the pledge?" he asked.
Felicia colored. Over her face and neck the warm blood flowed and she answered,
"You would not ask such a question, father, if you had been at the
meeting." She lingered a moment in the room, then asked to be excused from
dinner for a while and went up to see her mother.
No one but they two ever knew what that interview between Felicia and her mother
was. It is certain that she must have told her mother something of the spiritual
power that had awed every person present in the company of disciples who faced
Dr. Bruce in that meeting after the morning service. It is also certain that
Felicia had never before known such an experience, and would never have thought
of sharing it with her mother if it had not been for the prayer the evening
before. Another fact is also known of Felicia's experience at this time. When
she finally joined her father and Rose at the table she seemed unable to tell
them much about the meeting. There was a reluctance to speak of it as one might
hesitate to attempt a description of a wonderful sunset to a person who never
talked about anything but the weather.
When that Sunday in the Sterling mansion was drawing to a close and the soft,
warm lights throughout the dwelling were glowing through the great windows, in a
corner of her room, where the light was obscure, Felicia kneeled, and when she
raised her face and turned it towards the light, it was the face of a woman who
had already defined for herself the greatest issues of earthly life.
That same evening, after the Sunday evening service, Dr. Bruce was talking over
the events of the day with his wife. They were of one heart and mind in the
matter, and faced their new future with all the faith and courage of new
disciples. Neither was deceived as to the probable results of the pledge to
themselves or to the church.
They had been talking but a little while when the bell rang and Dr. Bruce going
to the door exclaimed, as he opened it: "It is you, Edward! Come in."
There came into the hall a commanding figure. The Bishop was of extraordinary
height and breadth of shoulder, but of such good proportions that there was no
thought of ungainly or even of unusual size. The impression the Bishop made on
strangers was, first, that of great health, and then of great affection.
He came into the parlor and greeted Mrs. Bruce, who after a few moments was
called out of the room, leaving the two men together. The Bishop sat in a deep,
easy chair before the open fire. There was just enough dampness in the early
spring of the year to make an open fire pleasant.
"Calvin, you have taken a very serious step today," he finally said,
lifting his large dark eyes to his old college classmate's face. "I heard
of it this afternoon. I could not resist the desire to see you about it
tonight."
"I'm glad you came." Dr. Bruce laid a hand on the Bishop's shoulder.
"You understand what this means, Edward?"
"I think I do. Yes, I am sure." The Bishop spoke very slowly and
thoughtfully. He sat with his hands clasped together. Over his face, marked with
lines of consecration and service and the love of men, a shadow crept, a shadow
not caused by the firelight. Once more he lifted his eyes toward his old friend.
"Calvin, we have always understood each other. Ever since our paths led us
in different ways in church life we have walked together in Christian
fellowship--."
"It is true," replied Dr. Bruce with an emotion he made no attempt to
conceal or subdue. "Thank God for it. I prize your fellowship more than any
other man's. I have always known what it meant, though it has always been more
than I deserve."
The Bishop looked affectionately at his friend. But the shadow still rested on
his face. After a pause he spoke again: "The new discipleship means a
crisis for you in your work. If you keep this pledge to do all things as Jesus
would do -- as I know you will -- it requires no prophet to predict some
remarkable changes in your parish." The Bishop looked wistfully at his
friend and then continued: "In fact, I do not see how a perfect upheaval of
Christianity, as we now know it, can be prevented if the ministers and churches
generally take the Raymond pledge and live it out." He paused as if he were
waiting for his friend to say something, to ask some question. But Bruce did not
know of the fire that was burning in the Bishop's heart over the very question
that Maxwell and himself had fought out.
"Now, in my church, for instance," continued the Bishop, "it
would be rather a difficult matter, I fear, to find very many people who would
take a pledge like that and live up to it. Martyrdom is a lost art with us. Our
Christianity loves its ease and comfort too well to take up anything so rough
and heavy as a cross. And yet what does following Jesus mean? What is it to walk
in His steps?"
The Bishop was soliloquizing now and it is doubtful if he thought, for the
moment, of his friend's presence. For the first time there flashed into Dr.
Bruce's mind a suspicion of the truth. What if the Bishop would throw the weight
of his great influence on the side of the Raymond movement? He had the following
of the most aristocratic, wealthy, fashionable people, not only in Chicago, but
in several large cities. What if the Bishop should join this new discipleship!
The thought was about to be followed by the word. Dr. Bruce had reached out his
hand and with the familiarity of lifelong friendship had placed it on the
Bishop's shoulder and was about to ask a very important question, when they were
both startled by the violent ringing of the bell. Mrs. Bruce had gone to the
door and was talking with some one in the hall. There was a loud exclamation and
then, as the Bishop rose and Bruce was stepping toward the curtain that hung
before the entrance to the parlor, Mrs. Bruce pushed it aside. Her face was
white and she was trembling.
"O Calvin! Such terrible news! Mr. Sterling -- oh, I cannot tell it! What a
blow to those girls!" "What is it?" Mr. Bruce advanced with the
Bishop into the hall and confronted the messenger, a servant from the Sterlings.
The man was without his hat and had evidently run over with the news, as Dr.
Bruce lived nearest of any intimate friends of the family.
"Mr. Sterling shot himself, sir, a few minutes ago. He killed himself in
his bed-room. Mrs. Sterling--"
"I will go right over, Edward. Will you go with me? The Sterlings are old
friends of yours."'
The Bishop was very pale, but calm as always. He looked his friend in the face
and answered: "Aye, Calvin, I will go with you not only to this house of
death, but also the whole way of human sin and sorrow, please God."
And even in that moment of horror at the unexpected news, Dr. Bruce understood
what the Bishop had promised to do.
Chapter Twenty-four
These are they which follow the Lamb whithersoever He goeth.
WHEN Dr. Bruce and the Bishop entered the Sterling mansion everything in the
usually well appointed household was in the greatest confusion and terror. The
great rooms downstairs were empty, but overhead were hurried footsteps and
confused noises. One of the servants ran down the grand staircase with a look of
horror on her face just as the Bishop and Dr. Bruce were starting to go up.
"Miss Felicia is with Mrs. Sterling," the servant stammered in answer
to a question, and then burst into a hysterical cry and ran through the
drawing-room and out of doors.
At the top of the staircase the two men were met by Felicia. She walked up to
Dr. Bruce at once and put both hands in his. The Bishop then laid his hand on
her head and the three stood there a moment in perfect silence. The Bishop had
known Felicia since she was a little child. He was the first to break the
silence.
"The God of all mercy be with you, Felicia, in this dark hour. Your
mother--"
The Bishop hesitated. Out of the buried past he had, during his hurried passage
from his friend's to this house of death, irresistibly drawn the one tender
romance of his young manhood. Not even Bruce knew that. But there had been a
time when the Bishop had offered the incense of a singularly undivided affection
upon the altar of his youth to the beautiful Camilla Rolfe, and she had chosen
between him and the millionaire. The Bishop carried no bitterness with his
memory; but it was still a memory.
For answer to the Bishop's unfinished query, Felicia turned and went back into
her mother's room. She had not said a word yet, but both men were struck with
her wonderful calm. She returned to the hall door and beckoned to them, and the
two ministers, with a feeling that they were about to behold something very
unusual, entered.
Rose lay with her arms outstretched upon the bed. Clara, the nurse, sat with her
head covered, sobbing in spasms of terror. And Mrs. Sterling with "the
light that never was on sea or land" luminous on her face, lay there so
still that even the Bishop was deceived at first. Then, as the great truth broke
upon him and Dr. Bruce, he staggered, and the sharp agony of the old wound shot
through him. It passed, and left him standing there in that chamber of death
with the eternal calmness and strength that the children of God have a right to
possess. And right well he used that calmness and strength in the days that
followed.
The next moment the house below was in a tumult. Almost at the same time the
doctor who had been sent for at once, but lived some distance away, came in,
together with police officers, who had been summoned by frightened servants.
With them were four or five newspaper correspondents and several neighbors. Dr.
Bruce and the Bishop met this miscellaneous crowd at the head of the stairs and
succeeded in excluding all except those whose presence was necessary. With these
the two friends learned all the facts ever known about the "Sterling
tragedy," as the papers in their sensational accounts next day called it.
Mr. Sterling had gone into his room that evening about nine o'clock and that was
the last seen of him until, in half an hour, a shot was heard in the room, and a
servant who was in the hall ran into the room and found him dead on the floor,
killed by his own hand. Felicia at the time was sitting by her mother. Rose was
reading in the library. She ran upstairs, saw her father as he was being lifted
upon the couch by the servants, and then ran screaming into her mother's room,
where she flung herself down at the foot of the bed in a swoon. Mrs. Sterling
had at first fainted at the shock, then rallied with a wonderful swiftness and
sent for Dr. Bruce. She had then insisted on seeing her husband. In spite of
Felicia's efforts, she had compelled Clara to support her while she crossed the
hall and entered the room where her husband lay. She had looked upon him with a
tearless face, had gone back to her own room, was laid on her bed, and as Dr.
Bruce and the Bishop entered the house she, with a prayer of forgiveness for
herself and for her husband on her quivering lips, had died, with Felicia
bending over her and Rose still lying senseless at her feet.
So great and swift had been the entrance of grim Death into that palace of
luxury that Sunday night! But the full cause of his coming was not learned until
the facts in regard to Mr. Sterling's business affairs were finally disclosed.
Then it was learned that for some time he had been facing financial ruin owing
to certain speculations that had in a month's time swept his supposed wealth
into complete destruction. With the cunning and desperation of a man who battles
for his very life when he saw his money, which was all the life he ever valued,
slipping from him, he had put off the evil day to the last moment. Sunday
afternoon, however, he had received news that proved to him beyond a doubt the
fact of his utter ruin. The very house that he called his, the chairs in which
he sat, his carriage, the dishes from which he ate, had all been bought with
money for which he himself had never really done an honest stroke of pure labor.
It had all rested on a tissue of deceit and speculation that had no foundation
in real values. He knew that fact better than any one else, but he had hoped,
with the hope such men always have, that the same methods that brought him the
money would also prevent the loss. He had been deceived in this as many others
have been. As soon as the truth that he was practically a beggar had dawned upon
him, he saw no escape from suicide. It was the irresistible result of such a
life as he had lived. He had made money his god. As soon as that god was gone
out of his little world there was nothing more to worship; and when a man's
object of worship is gone he has no more to live for. Thus died the great
millionaire, Charles R. Sterling. And, verily, he died as the fool dieth, for
what is the gain or the loss of money compared with the unsearchable riches of
eternal life which are beyond the reach of speculation, loss or change?
Mrs. Sterling's death was the result of the shock. She had not been taken into
her husband's confidence for years, but she knew that the source of his wealth
was precarious. Her life for several years had been a death in life. The Rolfes
always gave an impression that they could endure more disaster unmoved than any
one else. Mrs. Sterling illustrated the old family tradition when she was
carried into the room where her husband lay. But the feeble tenement could not
hold the spirit and it gave up the ghost, torn and weakened by long years of
suffering and disappointment.
The effect of this triple blow, the death of father and mother, and the loss of
property, was instantly apparent in the sisters. The horror of events stupefied
Rose for weeks. She lay unmoved by sympathy or any effort to rally. She did not
seem yet to realize that the money which had been so large a part of her very
existence was gone. Even when she was told that she and Felicia must leave the
house and be dependent on relatives and friends, she did not seem to understand
what it meant.
Felicia, however, was fully conscious of the facts. She knew just what had
happened and why. She was talking over her future plans with her cousin Rachel a
few days after the funerals. Mrs. Winslow and Rachel had left Raymond and come
to Chicago at once as soon as the terrible news had reached them, and with other
friends of the family were planning for the future of Rose and Felicia.
"Felicia, you and Rose must come to Raymond with us. That is settled.
Mother will not hear to any other plan at present," Rachel had said, while
her beautiful face glowed with love for her cousin, a love that had deepened day
by day, and was intensified by the knowledge that they both belonged to the new
discipleship.
"Unless I can find something to do here," answered Felicia. She looked
wistfully at Rachel, and Rachel said gently:
"What could you do, dear?"
"Nothing. I was never taught to do anything except a little music, and I do
not know enough about it to teach it or earn my living at it. I have learned to
cook a little," Felicia added with a slight smile.
"Then you can cook for us. Mother is always having trouble with her
kitchen," said Rachel, understanding well enough she was now dependent for
her very food and shelter upon the kindness of family friends. It is true the
girls received a little something out of the wreck of their father's fortune,
but with a speculator's mad folly he had managed to involve both his wife's and
his children's portion in the common ruin.
"Can I? Can I?" Felicia responded to Rachel's proposition as if it
were to be considered seriously. "I am ready to do anything honorable to
make my living and that of Rose. Poor Rose! She will never be able to get over
the shock of our trouble."
"We will arrange the details when we get to Raymond," Rachel said,
smiling through her tears at Felicia's eager willingness to care for herself.
So in a few weeks Rose and Felicia found themselves a part of the Winslow family
in Raymond. It was a bitter experience for Rose, but there was nothing else for
her to do and she accepted the inevitable, brooding over the great change in her
life and in many ways adding to the burden of Felicia and her cousin Rachel.
Felicia at once found herself in an atmosphere of discipleship that was like
heaven to her in its revelation of companionship. It is true that Mrs. Winslow
was not in sympathy with the course that Rachel was taking, but the remarkable
events in Raymond since the pledge was taken were too powerful in their results
not to impress even such a woman as Mrs. Winslow. With Rachel, Felicia found a
perfect fellowship. She at once found a part to take in the new work at the
Rectangle. In the spirit of her new life she insisted upon helping in the
housework at her aunt's, and in a short time demonstrated her ability as a cook
so clearly that Virginia suggested that she take charge of the cooking at the
Rectangle.
Felicia entered upon this work with the keenest pleasure. For the first time in
her life she had the delight of doing something of value for the happiness of
others. Her resolve to do everything after asking, "What would Jesus
do?" touched her deepest nature. She began to develop and strengthen
wonderfully. Even Mrs. Winslow was obliged to acknowledge the great usefulness
and beauty of Felicia's character. The aunt looked with astonishment upon her
niece, this city-bred girl, reared in the greatest luxury, the daughter of a
millionaire, now walking around in her kitchen, her arms covered with flour and
occasionally a streak of it on her nose, for Felicia at first had a habit of
rubbing her nose forgetfully when she was trying to remember some recipe, mixing
various dishes with the greatest interest in their results, washing up pans and
kettles and doing the ordinary work of a servant in the Winslow kitchen and at
the rooms at the Rectangle Settlement. At first Mrs. Winslow remonstrated.
"Felicia, it is not your place to be out here doing this common work. I
cannot allow it."
"Why, Aunt? Don't you like the muffins I made this morning?" Felicia
would ask meekly, but with a hidden smile, knowing her aunt's weakness for that
kind of muffin.
"They were beautiful, Felicia. But it does not seem right for you to be
doing such work for us."
"Why not? What else can I do?"
Her aunt looked at her thoughtfully, noting her remarkable beauty of face and
expression.
"You do not always intend to do this kind of work, Felicia?"
"Maybe I shall. I have had a dream of opening an ideal cook shop in Chicago
or some large city and going around to the poor families in some slum district
like the Rectangle, teaching the mothers how to prepare food properly. I
remember hearing Dr. Bruce say once that he believed one of the great miseries
of comparative poverty consisted in poor food. He even went so far as to say
that he thought some kinds of crime could be traced to soggy biscuit and tough
beefsteak. I'm sure I would be able to make a living for Rose and myself and at
the same time help others."
Felicia brooded over this dream until it became a reality. Meanwhile she grew
into the affections of the Raymond people and the Rectangle folks, among whom
she was known as the "angel cook." Underneath the structure of the
beautiful character she was growing, always rested her promise made in Nazareth
Avenue Church, "What would Jesus do?" She prayed and hoped and worked
and regulated her life by the answer to that question. It was the inspiration of
her conduct and the answer to all her ambition.
Chapter Twenty-five
THREE months had gone by since the Sunday morning when Dr. Bruce came into his
pulpit with the message of the new discipleship. They were three months of great
excitement in Nazareth Avenue Church. Never before had Rev. Calvin Bruce
realized how deep the feeling of his members flowed. He humbly confessed that
the appeal he had made met with an unexpected response from men and women who,
like Felicia, were hungry for something in their lives that the conventional
type of church membership and fellowship had failed to give them.
But Dr. Bruce was not yet satisfied for himself. He cannot tell what his feeling
was or what led to the movement he finally made, to the great astonishment of
all who knew him, better than by relating a conversation between him and the
Bishop at this time in the history of the pledge in Nazareth Avenue Church. The
two friends were as before in Dr. Bruce's house, seated in his study.
"You know what I have come in this evening for?" the Bishop was saying
after the friends had been talking some time about the results of the pledge
with the Nazareth Avenue people.
Dr. Bruce looked over at the Bishop and shook his head.
"I have come to confess that I have not yet kept my promise to walk in His
steps in the way that I believe I shall be obliged to if I satisfy my thought of
what it means to walk in His steps."
Dr. Bruce had risen and was pacing his study. The Bishop remained in the deep
easy chair with his hands clasped, but his eye burned with the blow that
belonged to him before he made some great resolve.
"Edward," Dr. Bruce spoke abruptly, "I have not yet been able to
satisfy myself, either, in obeying my promise. But I have at last decided on my
course. In order to follow it I shall be obliged to resign from Nazareth Avenue
Church."
"I knew you would," replied the Bishop quietly. "And I came in
this evening to say that I shall be obliged to do the same thing with my
charge."
Dr. Bruce turned and walked up to his friend. They were both laboring under a
repressed excitement.
"Is it necessary in your case?" asked Bruce.
"Yes. Let me state my reasons. Probably they are the same as yours. In
fact, I am sure they are." The Bishop paused a moment, then went on with
increasing feeling:
"Calvin, you know how many years I have been doing the work of my position,
and you know something of the responsibility and care of it. I do not mean to
say that my life has been free from burden-bearing or sorrow. But I have
certainly led what the poor and desperate of this sinful city would call a very
comfortable, yes, a very luxurious life. I have had a beautiful house to live
in, the most expensive food, clothing and physical pleasures. I have been able
to go abroad at least a dozen times, and have enjoyed for years the beautiful
companionship of art and letters and music and all the rest, of the very best. I
have never known what it meant to be without money or its equivalent. And I have
been unable to silence the question of late: 'What have I suffered for the sake
of Christ?' Paul was told what great things he must suffer for the sake of his
Lord. Maxwell's position at Raymond is well taken when he insists that to walk
in the steps of Christ means to suffer. Where has my suffering come in? The
petty trials and annoyances of my clerical life are not worth mentioning as
sorrows or sufferings. Compared with Paul or any of the Christian martyrs or
early disciples I have lived a luxurious, sinful life, full of ease and
pleasure. I cannot endure this any longer. I have that within me which of late
rises in overwhelming condemnation of such a following of Jesus. I have not been
walking in His steps. Under the present system of church and social life I see
no escape from this condemnation except to give the most of my life personally
to the actual physical and soul needs of the wretched people in the worst part
of this city."
The Bishop had risen now and walked over to the window. The street in front of
the house was as light as day, and he looked out at the crowds passing, then
turned and with a passionate utterance that showed how deep the volcanic fire in
him burned, he exclaimed:
"Calvin, this is a terrible city in which we live! Its misery, its sin, its
selfishness, appall my heart. And I have struggled for years with the sickening
dread of the time when I should be forced to leave the pleasant luxury of my
official position to put my life into contact with the modern paganism of this
century. The awful condition of the girls in some great business places, the
brutal selfishness of the insolent society fashion and wealth that ignores all
the sorrow of the city, the fearful curse of the drink and gambling hell, the
wail of the unemployed, the hatred of the church by countless men who see in it
only great piles of costly stone and upholstered furniture and the minister as a
luxurious idler, all the vast tumult of this vast torrent of humanity with its
false and its true ideas, its exaggeration of evils in the church and its
bitterness and shame that are the result of many complex causes, all this as a
total fact in its contrast with the easy, comfortable life I have lived, fills
me more and more with a sense of mingled terror and self accusation. I have
heard the words of Jesus many times lately: 'Inasmuch as ye did it not unto one
of these least My brethren, ye did it not unto Me.' And when have I personally
visited the prisoner or the desperate or the sinful in any way that has actually
caused me suffering? Rather, I have followed the conventional soft habits of my
position and have lived in the society of the rich, refined, aristocratic
members of my congregations. Where has the suffering come in? What have I
suffered for Jesus' sake? Do you know, Calvin," he turned abruptly toward
his friend, "I have been tempted of late to lash myself with a scourge. If
I had lived in Martin Luther's time I should have bared my back to a
self-inflicted torture."
Dr. Bruce was very pale. Never had he seen the Bishop or heard him when under
the influence of such a passion. There was a sudden silence in the room. The
Bishop sat down again and bowed his head.
Dr. Bruce spoke at last: "Edward, I do not need to say that you have
expressed my feelings also. I have been in a similar position for years. My life
has been one of comparative luxury. I do not, of course, mean to say that I have
not had trials and discouragements and burdens in my church ministry. But I
cannot say that I have suffered any for Jesus. That verse in Peter constantly
haunts me: 'Christ also suffered for you, leaving you an example that ye should
follow His steps.' I have lived in luxury. I do not know what it means to want.
I also have had my leisure for travel and beautiful companionship. I have been
surrounded by the soft, easy comforts of civilization. The sin and misery of
this great city have beaten like waves against the stone walls of my church and
of this house in which I live, and I have hardly heeded them, the walls have
been so thick. I have reached a point where I cannot endure this any longer. I
am not condemning the Church. I love her. I am not forsaking the Church. I
believe in her mission and have no desire to destroy. Least of all, in the step
I am about to take do I desire to be charged with abandoning the Christian
fellowship. But I feel that I must resign my place as pastor of Nazareth Church
in order to satisfy myself that I am walking as I ought to walk in His steps. In
this action I judge no other minister and pass no criticism on others'
discipleship. But I feel as you do. Into a close contact with the sin and shame
and degradation of this great city I must come personally. And I know that to do
that I must sever my immediate connection with Nazareth Avenue Church. I do not
see any other way for myself to suffer for His sake as I feel that I ought to
suffer."
Again that sudden silence fell over those two men. It was no ordinary action
they were deciding. They had both reached the same conclusion by the same
reasoning, and they were too thoughtful, too well accustomed to the measuring of
conduct, to underestimate the seriousness of their position.
"What is your plan?" The Bishop at last spoke gently, looking with the
smile that always beautified his face. The Bishop's face grew in glory now every
day.
"My plan," replied Dr. Bruce slowly, "is, in brief, the putting
of myself into the centre of the greatest human need I can find in this city and
living there. My wife is fully in accord with me. We have already decided to
find a residence in that part of the city where we can make our personal lives
count for the most."
"Let me suggest a place." The Bishop was on fire now. His fine face
actually glowed with the enthusiasm of the movement in which he and his friend
were inevitably embarked. He went on and unfolded a plan of such far-reaching
power and possibility that Dr. Bruce, capable and experienced as he was, felt
amazed at the vision of a greater soul than his own.
They sat up late, and were as eager and even glad as if they were planning for a
trip together to some rare land of unexplored travel. Indeed, the Bishop said
many times afterward that the moment his decision was reached to live the life
of personal sacrifice he had chosen he suddenly felt an uplifting as if a great
burden were taken from him. He was exultant. So was Dr. Bruce from the same
cause.
Their plan as it finally grew into a workable fact was in reality nothing more
than the renting of a large building formerly used as a warehouse for a brewery,
reconstructing it and living in it themselves in the very heart of a territory
where the saloon ruled with power, where the tenement was its filthiest, where
vice and ignorance and shame and poverty were congested into hideous forms. It
was not a new idea. It was an idea started by Jesus Christ when He left His
Father's House and forsook the riches that were His in order to get nearer
humanity and, by becoming a part of its sin, helping to draw humanity apart from
its sin. The University Settlement idea is not modern. It is as old as Bethlehem
and Nazareth. And in this particular case it was the nearest approach to
anything that would satisfy the hunger of these two men to suffer for Christ.
There had sprung up in them at the same time a longing that amounted to a
passion, to get nearer the great physical poverty and spiritual destitution of
the mighty city that throbbed around them. How could they do this except as they
became a part of it as nearly as one man can become a part of another's misery?
Where was the suffering to come in unless there was an actual self-denial of
some sort? And what was to make that self-denial apparent to themselves or any
one else, unless it took this concrete, actual, personal form of trying to share
the deepest suffering and sin of the city?
So they reasoned for themselves, not judging others. They were simply keeping
their own pledge to do as Jesus would do, as they honestly judged He would do.
That was what they had promised. How could they quarrel with the result if they
were irresistibly compelled to do what they were planning to do?
The Bishop had money of his own. Every one in Chicago knew that he had a
handsome fortune. Dr. Bruce had acquired and saved by literary work carried on
in connection with his parish duties more than a comfortable competence. This
money, a large part of it, the two friends agreed to put at once into the work,
most of it into the furnishing of the Settlement House.
Chapter Twenty-six
MEANWHILE, Nazareth Avenue Church was experiencing something never known before
in all its history. The simple appeal on the part of its pastor to his members
to do as Jesus would do had created a sensation that still continued. The result
of that appeal was very much the same as in Henry Maxwell's church in Raymond,
only this church was far more aristocratic, wealthy and conventional.
Nevertheless when, one Sunday morning in early summer, Dr. Bruce came into his
pulpit and announced his resignation, the sensation deepened all over the city,
although he had advised with his board of trustees, and the movement he intended
was not a matter of surprise to them. But when it become publicly known that the
Bishop had also announced his resignation and retirement from the position he
had held so long, in order to go and live himself in the centre of the worst
part of Chicago, the public astonishment reached its height.
"But why?" the Bishop replied to one valued friend who had almost with
tears tried to dissuade him from his purpose. "Why should what Dr. Bruce
and I propose to do seem so remarkable a thing, as if it were unheard of that a
Doctor of Divinity and a Bishop should want to save lost souls in this
particular manner? If we were to resign our charge for the purpose of going to
Bombay or Hong Kong or any place in Africa, the churches and the people would
exclaim at the heroism of missions. Why should it seem so great a thing if we
have been led to give our lives to help rescue the heathen and the lost of our
own city in the way we are going to try it? Is it then such a tremendous event
that two Christian ministers should be not only willing but eager to live close
to the misery of the world in order to know it and realize it? Is it such a rare
thing that love of humanity should find this particular form of expression in
the rescue of souls?"
And however the Bishop may have satisfied himself that there ought to be nothing
so remarkable about it at all, the public continued to talk and the churches to
record their astonishment that two such men, so prominent in the ministry,
should leave their comfortable homes, voluntarily resign their pleasant social
positions and enter upon a life of hardship, of self-denial and actual
suffering. Christian America! Is it a reproach on the form of our discipleship
that the exhibition of actual suffering for Jesus on the part of those who walk
in His steps always provokes astonishment as at the sight of something very
unusual?
Nazareth Avenue Church parted from its pastor with regret for the most part,
although the regret was modified with a feeling of relief on the part of those
who had refused to take the pledge. Dr. Bruce carried with him the respect of
men who, entangled in business in such a way that obedience to the pledge would
have ruined them, still held in their deeper, better natures a genuine
admiration for courage and consistency. They had known Dr. Bruce many years as a
kindly, conservative, safe man, but the thought of him in the light of sacrifice
of this sort was not familiar to them. As fast as they understood it, they gave
their pastor the credit of being absolutely true to his recent convictions as to
what following Jesus meant. Nazareth Avenue Church never lost the impulse of
that movement started by Dr. Bruce. Those who went with him in making the
promise breathed into the church the very breath of divine life, and are
continuing that life-giving work at this present time.
* * * * * *
It was fall again, and the city faced another hard winter. The Bishop one
afternoon came out of the Settlement and walked around the block, intending to
go on a visit to one of his new friends in the district. He had walked about
four blocks when he was attracted by a shop that looked different from the
others. The neighborhood was still quite new to him, and every day he discovered
some strange spot or stumbled upon some unexpected humanity.
The place that attracted his notice was a small house close by a Chinese
laundry. There were two windows in the front, very clean, and that was
remarkable to begin with. Then, inside the window, was a tempting display of
cookery, with prices attached to the various articles that made him wonder
somewhat, for he was familiar by this time with many facts in the life of the
people once unknown to him. As he stood looking at the windows, the door between
them opened and Felicia Sterling came out.
"Felicia!" exclaimed the Bishop. "When did you move into my
parish without my knowledge?"
"How did you find me so soon?" inquired Felicia.
"Why, don't you know? These are the only clean windows in the block."
"I believe they are," replied Felicia with a laugh that did the Bishop
good to hear.
"But why have you dared to come to Chicago without telling me, and how have
you entered my diocese without my knowledge?" asked the Bishop. And Felicia
looked so like that beautiful, clean, educated, refined world he once knew, that
he might be pardoned for seeing in her something of the old Paradise. Although,
to speak truth for him, he had no desire to go back to it.
"Well, dear Bishop," said Felicia, who had always called him so,
"I knew how overwhelmed you were with your work. I did not want to burden
you with my plans. And besides, I am going to offer you my services. Indeed, I
was just on my way to see you and ask your advice. I am settled here for the
present with Mrs. Bascom, a saleswoman who rents our three rooms, and with one
of Rachel's music pupils who is being helped to a course in violin by Virginia
Page. She is from the people," continued Felicia, using the words
"from the people" so gravely and unconsciously that her hearer smiled,
"and I am keeping house for her and at the same time beginning an
experiment in pure food for the masses. I am an expert and I have a plan I want
you to admire and develop. Will you, dear Bishop?"
"Indeed I will," he replied. The sight of Felicia and her remarkable
vitality, enthusiasm and evident purpose almost bewildered him.
"Martha can help at the Settlement with her violin and I will help with my
messes. You see, I thought I would get settled first and work out something, and
then come with some real thing to offer. I'm able to earn my own living
now."
"You are?" the Bishop said a little incredulously. "How? Making
those things?"
"Those things!" said Felicia with a show of indignation. "I would
have you know, sir, that 'those things' are the best-cooked, purest food
products in this whole city."
"I don't doubt it," he replied hastily, while his eyes twinkled,
"Still, 'the proof of the pudding' -- you know the rest."
"Come in and try some!" she exclaimed. "You poor Bishop! You look
as if you hadn't had a good meal for a month."
She insisted on his entering the little front room where Martha, a wide-awake
girl with short, curly hair, and an unmistakable air of music about her, was
busy with practice.
"Go right on, Martha. This is the Bishop. You have heard me speak of him so
often. Sit down there and let me give you a taste of the fleshpots of Egypt, for
I believe you have been actually fasting."
So they had an improvised lunch, and the Bishop who, to tell the truth, had not
taken time for weeks to enjoy his meals, feasted on the delight of his
unexpected discovery and was able to express his astonishment and gratification
at the quality of the cookery.
"I thought you would at least say it is as good as the meals you used to
get at the Auditorium at the big banquets," said Felicia slyly.
"As good as! The Auditorium banquets were simply husks compared with this
one, Felicia. But you must come to the Settlement. I want you to see what we are
doing. And I am simply astonished to find you here earning your living this way.
I begin to see what your plan is. You can be of infinite help to us. You don't
really mean that you will live here and help these people to know the value of
good food?"
"Indeed I do," she answered gravely. "That is my gospel. Shall I
not follow it?"
"Aye, Aye! You're right. Bless God for sense like yours! When I left the
world," the Bishop smiled at the phrase, "they were talking a good
deal about the 'new woman.' If you are one of them, I am a convert right now and
here."
"Flattery! Still is there no escape from it, even in the slums of
Chicago?" Felicia laughed again. And the man's heart, heavy though it had
grown during several months of vast sin-bearing, rejoiced to hear it! It sounded
good. It was good. It belonged to God.
Felicia wanted to visit the Settlement, and went back with him. She was amazed
at the results of what considerable money an a good deal of consecrated brains
had done. As they walked through the building they talked incessantly. She was
the incarnation of vital enthusiasm, and he wondered at the exhibition of it as
it bubbled up and sparkled over.
They went down into the basement and the Bishop pushed open a door from behind
which came the sound of a carpenter's plane. It was a small but well equipped
carpenter's shop. A young man with a paper cap on his head and clad in blouse
and overalls was whistling and driving the plane as he whistled. He looked up as
the two entered, and took off his cap. As he did so, his little finger carried a
small curling shaving up to his hair and it caught there.
"Miss Sterling, Mr. Stephen Clyde," said the Bishop. "Clyde is
one of our helpers here two afternoons in the week."
Just then the bishop was called upstairs and he excused himself a moment,
leaving Felicia and the young carpenter together.
"We have met before," said Felicia looking at Clyde frankly.
"Yes, 'back in the world,' as the Bishop says," replied the young man,
and his fingers trembled a little as they lay on the board he had been planing.
"Yes." Felicia hesitated. "I am very glad to see you."
"Are you?" The flush of pleasure mounted to the young carpenter's
forehead. "You have had a great deal of trouble since -- since --
then," he said, and then he was afraid he had wounded her, or called up
painful memories. But she had lived over all that.
"Yes, and you also. How is it that you're working here?"
"It is a long story, Miss Sterling. My father lost his money and I was
obliged to go to work. A very good thing for me. The Bishop says I ought to be
very grateful. I am. I am very happy now. I learned the trade, hoping some time
to be of use, I am night clerk at one of the hotels. That Sunday morning when
you took the pledge at Nazareth Avenue Church, I took it with the others."
"Did you?" said Felicia slowly. "I am glad."
Just then the Bishop came back, and very soon he and Felicia went away leaving
the young carpenter at his work. Some one noticed that he whistled louder than
ever as he planed.
"Felicia," said the Bishop, "did you know Stephen Clyde
before?"
"Yes, 'back in the world,' dear Bishop. He was one of my acquaintances in
Nazareth Avenue Church."
"Ah!" said the Bishop.
"We were very good friends," added Felicia.
"But nothing more?" the Bishop ventured to ask.
Felicia's face glowed for an instant. Then she looked her companion in the eyes
frankly and answered: "Truly and truly, nothing more."
"It would be just the way of the world for these two people to come to like
each other, though," thought the man to himself, and somehow the thought
made him grave. It was almost like the old pang over Camilla. But it passed,
leaving him afterwards, when Felicia had gone back, with tears in his eyes and a
feeling that was almost hope that Felicia and Stephen would like each other.
"After all," he said, like the sensible, good man that he was,
"is not romance a part of humanity? Love is older than I am, and
wiser."
The week following, the Bishop had an experience that belongs to this part of
the Settlement history. He was coming back to the Settlement very late from some
gathering of the striking tailors, and was walking along with his hands behind
him, when two men jumped out from behind an old fence that shut off an abandoned
factory from the street, and faced him. One of the men thrust a pistol in his
face, and the other threatened him with a ragged stake that had evidently been
torn from the fence.
"Hold up your hands, and be quick about it!" said the man with the
pistol.
The place was solitary and the Bishop had no thought of resistance. He did as he
was commanded, and the man with the stake began to go through his pockets. He
was calm. His nerves did not quiver. As he stood there with his hands uplifted,
an ignorant spectator might have thought that he was praying for the souls of
these two men. And he was. And his prayer was singularly answered that very
night.
Chapter Twenty-seven
"Righteousness shall go before him and shall set us in the way of his
steps."
THE Bishop was not in the habit of carrying much money with him, and the man
with the stake who was searching him uttered an oath at the small amount of
change he found. As he uttered it, the man with the pistol savagely said,
"Jerk out his watch! We might as well get all we can out of the job!"
The man with the stake was on the point of laying hold of the chain where there
was a sound of footsteps coming towards him.
"Get behind the fence! We haven't half searched him yet! Mind you keep shut
now, if you don't want--"
The man with the pistol made a significant gesture with it and, with his
companion, pulled and pushed the Bishop down the alley and through a ragged,
broken opening in the fence. The three stood still there in the shadow until the
footsteps passed.
"Now, then, have you got the watch?" asked the man with the pistol.
"No, the chain is caught somewhere!" and the other man swore again.
"Break it then!"
"No, don't break it," the Bishop said, and it was the first time he
had spoken. "The chain is the gift of a very dear friend. I should be sorry
to have it broken."
At the sound of the Bishop's voice the man with the pistol started as if he had
been suddenly shot by his own weapon. With a quick movement of his other hand he
turned the Bishop's head toward's what little light was shining from the
alleyway, at the same time taking a step nearer. Then, to the amazement of his
companion, he said roughly: "Leave the watch alone! We've got the money.
That's enough!"
"Enough! Fifty cents! You don't reckon--"
Before the man with the stake could say another word he was confronted with the
muzzle of the pistol turned from the Bishop's head towards his own.
"Leave that watch be! And put back the money too. This is the Bishop we've
held up -- the Bishop -- do you hear?"
"And what of it! The President of the United States wouldn't be too good to
hold up, if -- "
"I say, you put the money back, or in five seconds I'll blow a hole through
your head that'll let in more sense than you have to spare now!" said the
other.
For a second the man with the stake seemed to hesitate at this strange turn in
events, as if measuring his companion's intention. Then he hastily dropped the
money back into the rifled pocket.
"You can take your hands down, sir." The man lowered his weapon
slowly, still keeping an eye on the other man, and speaking with rough respect.
The Bishop slowly brought his arms to his side, and looked earnestly at the two
men. In the dim light it was difficult to distinguish features. He was evidently
free to go his way now, but he stood there making no movement.
"You can go on. You needn't stay any longer on our account." The man
who had acted as spokesman turned and sat down on a stone. The other man stood
viciously digging his stake into the ground.
"That's just what I am staying for," replied the Bishop. He sat down
on a board that projected from the broken fence.
"You must like our company. It is hard sometimes for people to tear
themselves away from us," and the man standing up laughed coarsely.
"Shut up!" exclaimed the other. "We're on the road to hell,
though, that's sure enough. We need better company than ourselves and the
devil."
"If you would only allow me to be of any help," the Bishop spoke
gently, even lovingly. The man on the stone stared at the Bishop through the
darkness. After a moment of silence he spoke slowly like one who had finally
decided upon a course he had at first rejected.
"Do you remember ever seeing me before?"
"No," said the Bishop. "The light is not very good and I have
really not had a good look at you."
"Do you know me now?" The man suddenly took off his hat and getting up
from the stone walked over to the Bishop until they were near enough to touch
each other.
The man's hair was coal black except one spot on the top of his head about as
large as the palm of the hand, which was white.
The minute the Bishop saw that, he started. The memory of fifteen years ago
began to stir in him. The man helped him.
"Don't you remember one day back in '81 or '82 a man came to your house and
told a story about his wife and child having been burned to death in a tenement
fire in New York?"
"Yes, I begin to remember now." The other man seemed to be interested.
He ceased digging his stake in the ground and stood still listening.
"Do you remember how you took me into your own house that night and spent
all next day trying to find me a job? And how when you succeeded in getting me a
place in a warehouse as foreman, I promised to quit drinking because you asked
me to?"
"I remember it now. I hope you have kept your promise."
The man laughed savagely. Then he struck his hand against the fence with such
sudden passion that he drew blood.
"Kept it! I was drunk inside of a week! I've been drinking ever since. But
I've never forgotten you nor your prayer. Do you remember the morning after I
came to your house, after breakfast you had prayers and asked me to come in and
sit with the rest? That got me! But my mother used to pray! I can see her now
kneeling down by my bed when I was a lad. Father came in one night and kicked
her while she was kneeling there by me. But I never forgot that prayer of yours
that morning. You prayed for me just as mother used to, and you didn't seem to
take 'count of the fact that I was ragged and tough- looking and more than half
drunk when I rang your door bell. Oh, what a life I've lived! The saloon has
housed me and homed me and made hell on earth for me. But that prayer stuck to
me all the time. My promise not to drink was broken into a thousand pieces
inside of two Sundays, and I lost the job you found for me and landed in a
police station two days later, but I never forgot you nor your prayer. I don't
know what good it has done me, but I never forgot it. And I won't do any harm to
you nor let any one else. So you're free to go. That's why."
The Bishop did not stir. Somewhere a church clock struck one. The man had put on
his hat and gone back to his seat on the stone. The Bishop was thinking hard.
"How long is it since you had work?" he asked, and the man standing up
answered for the other.
"More'n six months since either of us did anything to tell of; unless you
count 'holding up' work. I call it pretty wearing kind of a job myself,
especially when we put in a night like this and don't make nothin'."
"Suppose I found good jobs for both of you? Would you quit this and begin
all over?"
"What's the use?" the man on the stone spoke sullenly. "I've
reformed a hundred times. Every time I go down deeper. The devil's begun to
foreclose on me already. It's too late."
"No!" said the Bishop. And never before the most entranced audience
had he felt the desire for souls burn up in him so strongly. All the time he sat
there during the remarkable scene he prayed, "O Lord Jesus, give me the
souls of these two for Thee! I am hungry for them. Give them to me!"
"No!" the Bishop repeated. "What does God want of you two men? It
doesn't so much matter what I want. But He wants just what I do in this case.
You two men are of infinite value to Him." And then his wonderful memory
came to his aid in an appeal such as no one on earth among men could make under
such circumstances. He had remembered the man's name in spite of the wonderfully
busy years that lay between his coming to the house and the present moment.
"Burns," he said, and he yearned over the men with an unspeakable
longing for them both, "if you and your friend here will go home with me
tonight I will find you both places of honorable employment. I will believe in
you and trust you. You are both comparatively young men. Why should God lose
you? It is a great thing to win the love of the Great Father. It is a small
thing that I should love you. But if you need to feel again that there is love
in the world, you will believe me when I say, my brothers, that I love you, and
in the name of Him who was crucified for our sins I cannot bear to see you miss
the glory of the human life. Come, be men! Make another try for it, God helping
you. No one but God and you and myself need ever know anything of this tonight.
He has forgiven it the minute you ask Him to. You will find that true. Come!
We'll fight it out together, you two and I. It's worth fighting for, everlasting
life is. It was the sinner that Christ came to help. I'll do what I can for you.
O God, give me the souls of these two men!" and he broke into a prayer to
God that was a continuation of his appeal to the men. His pent-up feeling had no
other outlet. Before he had prayed many moments Burns was sitting with his face
buried in his hands, sobbing. Where were his mother's prayers now? They were
adding to the power of the Bishop's. And the other man, harder, less moved,
without a previous knowledge of the Bishop, leaned back against the fence,
stolid at first. But as the prayer went on, he was moved by it. What force of
the Holy Spirit swept over his dulled, brutal, coarsened life, nothing but the
eternal records of the recording angel can ever disclose. But the same
supernatural Presence that smote Paul on the road to Damascus, and poured
through Henry Maxwell's church the morning he asked disciples to follow in
Jesus' steps, and had again broken irresistibly over the Nazareth Avenue
congregation, now manifested Himself in this foul corner of the mighty city and
over the natures of these two sinful sunken men, apparently lost to all the
pleadings of conscience and memory and God. The prayer seemed to red open the
crust that for years had surrounded them and shut them off from divine
communication. And they themselves were thoroughly startled by it.
The Bishop ceased, and at first he himself did not realize what had happened.
Neither did they. Burns still sat with his head bowed between his knees. The man
leaning against the fence looked at the Bishop with a face in which new emotions
of awe, repentance, astonishment and a broken gleam of joy struggled for
expression. The Bishop rose.
"Come, my brothers. God is good. You shall stay at the Settlement tonight,
and I will make good my promise as to the work."
The two men followed him in silence. When they reached the Settlement it was
after two o'clock. He let them in and led them to a room. At the door he paused
a moment. His tall, commanding figure stood in the doorway and his pale face was
illuminated with the divine glory.
"God bless you, my brothers!" he said, and leaving them his
benediction he went away.
In the morning he almost dreaded to face the men. But the impression of the
night had not worn away. True to his promise he secured work for them. The
janitor at the Settlement needed an assistant, owing to the growth of the work
there. So Burns was given the place. The Bishop succeeded in getting his
companion a position as driver for a firm of warehouse dray manufacturers not
far from the Settlement. And the Holy Spirit, struggling in these two darkened
sinful men, began His marvelous work of regeneration.
Chapter Twenty-eight
IT WAS the afternoon of that morning when Burns was installed in his new
position as assistant janitor that he was cleaning off the front steps of the
Settlement, when he paused a moment and stood up to look about him. The first
thing he noticed was a beer sign just across the alley. He could almost touch it
with his broom from where he stood. Over the street immediately opposite were
two large saloons, and a little farther down were three more.
Suddenly the door of the nearest saloon opened and a man came out. At the same
time two more went in. A strong odor of beer floated up to Burns as he stood on
the steps. He clutched his broom handle tightly and began to sweep again. He had
one foot on the porch and another on the steps just below. He took another step
down, still sweeping. The sweat stood on his forehead although the day was
frosty and the air chill. The saloon door opened again and three or four men
came out. A child went in with a pail, and came out a moment later with a quart
of beer. The child went by on the sidewalk just below him, and the odor of the
beer came up to him. He took another step down, still sweeping desperately. His
fingers were purple as he clutched the handle of the broom.
Then suddenly he pulled himself up one step and swept over the spot he had just
cleaned. He then dragged himself by a tremendous effort back to the floor of the
porch and went over into the corner of it farthest from the saloon and began to
sweep there. "O God!" he cried, "if the Bishop would only come
back!" The Bishop had gone out with Dr. Bruce somewhere, and there was no
one about that he knew. He swept in the corner for two or three minutes. His
face was drawn with the agony of his conflict. Gradually he edged out again
towards the steps and began to go down them. He looked towards the sidewalk and
saw that he had left one step unswept. The sight seemed to give him a reasonable
excuse for going down there to finish his sweeping.
He was on the sidewalk now, sweeping the last step, with his face towards the
Settlement and his back turned partly on the saloon across the alley. He swept
the step a dozen times. The sweat rolled over his face and dropped down at his
feet. By degrees he felt that he was drawn over towards that end of the step
nearest the saloon. He could smell the beer and rum now as the fumes rose around
him. It was like the infernal sulphur of the lowest hell, and yet it dragged him
as by a giant's hand nearer its source.
He was down in the middle of the sidewalk now, still sweeping. He cleared the
space in front of the Settlement and even went out into the gutter and swept
that. He took off his hat and rubbed his sleeve over his face. His lips were
pallid and his teeth chattered. He trembled all over like a palsied man and
staggered back and forth as if he was already drunk. His soul shook within him.
He had crossed over the little piece of stone flagging that measured the width
of the alley, and now he stood in front of the saloon, looking at the sign, and
staring into the window at the pile of whiskey and beer bottles arranged in a
great pyramid inside. He moistened his lips with his tongue and took a step
forward, looking around him stealthily. The door suddenly opened again and
someone came out. Again the hot, penetrating smell of liquor swept out into the
cold air, and he took another step towards the saloon door which had shut behind
the customer. As he laid his fingers on the door handle, a tall figure came
around the corner. It was the Bishop.
He seized Burns by the arm and dragged him back upon the sidewalk. The frenzied
man, now mad for a drink, shrieked out a curse and struck at his friend
savagely. It is doubtful if he really knew at first who was snatching him away
from his ruin. The blow fell upon the Bishop's face and cut a gash in his cheek.
He never uttered a word. But over his face a look of majestic sorrow swept. He
picked Burns up as if he had been a child and actually carried him up the steps
and into the house. He put him down in the hall and then shut the door and put
his back against it.
Burns fell on his knees sobbing and praying. The Bishop stood there panting with
his exertion, although Burns was a slightly-built man and had not been a great
weight for a man of his strength to carry. He was moved with unspeakable pity.
"Pray, Burns -- pray as you never prayed before! Nothing else will save
you!"
"O God! Pray with me. Save me! Oh, save me from my hell!" cried Burns.
And, the Bishop knelt by him in the hall and prayed as only he could pray.
After that they rose and Burns went to his room. He came out of it that evening
like a humble child. And the Bishop went his way older from that experience,
bearing on his body the marks of the Lord Jesus. Truly he was learning something
of what it means to walk in His steps.
But the saloon! It stood there, and all the others lined the street like so many
traps set for Burns. How long would the man be able to resist the smell of the
damnable stuff? The Bishop went out on the porch. The air of the whole city
seemed to be impregnated with the odor of beer. "How long, O Lord, how
long?" he prayed. Dr. Bruce came out, and the two friends talked about
Burns and his temptation.
"Did you ever make any inquiries about the ownership of this property
adjoining us?" the Bishop asked.
"No, I haven't taken time for it. I will now if you think it would be worth
while. But what can we do, Edward, against the saloon in this great city? It is
as firmly established as the churches or politics. What power can ever remove
it?"
"God will do it in time, as He has removed slavery," was the grave
reply. "Meanwhile I think we have a right to know who controls this saloon
so near the Settlement."
"I'll find out," said Dr. Bruce.
Two days later he walked into the business office of one of the members of
Nazareth Avenue Church and asked to see him a few moments. He was cordially
received by his old parishioner, who welcomed him into his room and urged him to
take all the time he wanted.
"I called to see you about that property next the Settlement where the
Bishop and myself now are, you know. I am going to speak plainly, because life
is too short and too serious for us both to have any foolish hesitation about
this matter. Clayton, do you think it is right to rent that property for a
saloon?"
Dr. Bruce's question was as direct and uncompromising as he had meant it to be.
The effect of it on his old parishioner was instantaneous.
The hot blood mounted to the face of the man who sat there beneath a picture of
business activity in a great city. Then he grew pale, dropped his head on his
hands, and when he raised it again Dr. Bruce was amazed to see a tear roll over
his face.
"Doctor, did you know that I took the pledge that morning with the
others?"
"Yes, I remember."
"But you never knew how I have been tormented over my failure to keep it in
this instance. That saloon property has been the temptation of the devil to me.
It is the best paying investment at present that I have. And yet it was only a
minute before you came in here that I was in an agony of remorse to think how I
was letting a little earthly gain tempt me into a denial of the very Christ I
had promised to follow. I knew well enough that He would never rent property for
such a purpose. There is no need, Dr. Bruce, for you to say a word more."
Clayton held out his hand and Dr. Bruce grasped it and shook it hard. After a
little he went away. But it was a long time afterwards that he learned all the
truth about the struggle that Clayton had known. It was only a part of the
history that belonged to Nazareth Avenue Church since that memorable morning
when the Holy Spirit sanctioned the Christ-like pledge. Not even the Bishop and
Dr. Bruce, moving as they now did in the very presence itself of divine
impulses, knew yet that over the whole sinful city the Spirit was brooding with
mighty eagerness, waiting for the disciples to arise to the call of sacrifice
and suffering, touching hearts long dull and cold, making business men and
money-makers uneasy in their absorption by the one great struggle for more
wealth, and stirring through the church as never in all the city's history the
church had been moved. The Bishop and Dr. Bruce had already seen some wonderful
things in their brief life at the Settlement. They were to see far greater soon,
more astonishing revelations of the divine power than they had supposed possible
in this age of the world.
Within a month the saloon next the Settlement was closed. The saloon-keeper's
lease had expired, and Clayton not only closed the property to the whiskey men,
but offered the building to the Bishop and Dr. Bruce to use for the Settlement
work, which had now grown so large that the building they had first rented was
not sufficient for the different industries that were planned.
One of the most important of these was the pure-food department suggested by
Felicia. It was not a month after Clayton turned the saloon property over to the
Settlement that Felicia found herself installed in the very room where souls had
been lost, as head of the department not only of cooking but of a course of
housekeeping for girls who wished to go out to service. She was now a resident
of the Settlement, and found a home with Mrs. Bruce and the other young women
from the city who were residents. Martha, the violinist, remained at the place
where the Bishop had first discovered the two girls, and came over to the
Settlement certain evenings to give lessons in music.
"Felicia, tell us your plan in full now," said the Bishop one evening
when, in a rare interval of rest from the great pressure of work, he was with
Dr. Bruce, and Felicia had come in from the other building.
"Well, I have long thought of the hired girl problem," said Felicia
with an air of wisdom that made Mrs. Bruce smile as she looked at the
enthusiastic, vital beauty of this young girl, transformed into a new creature
by the promise she had made to live the Christ-like life. "And I have
reached certain conclusions in regard to it that you men are not yet able to
fathom, but Mrs. Bruce will understand me."
"We acknowledge our infancy, Felicia. Go on," said the Bishop humbly.
"Then this is what I propose to do. The old saloon building is large enough
to arrange into a suite of rooms that will represent an ordinary house. My plan
is to have it so arranged, and then teach housekeeping and cooking to girls who
will afterwards go out to service. The course will be six months' long; in that
time I will teach plain cooking, neatness, quickness, and a love of good
work."
"Hold on, Felicia!" the Bishop interrupted, "this is not an age
of miracles!"
"Then we will make it one," replied Felicia. "I know this seems
like an impossibility, but I want to try it. I know a score of girls already who
will take the course, and if we can once establish something like an esprit de
corps among the girls themselves, I am sure it will be of great value to them. I
know already that the pure food is working a revolution in many families."
"Felicia, if you can accomplish half what you propose it will bless this
community," said Mrs. Bruce. "I don't see how you can do it, but I
say, God bless you, as you try."
"So say we all!" cried Dr. Bruce and the Bishop, and Felicia plunged
into the working out of her plan with the enthusiasm of her discipleship which
every day grew more and more practical and serviceable.
It must be said here that Felicia's plan succeeded beyond all expectations. She
developed wonderful powers of persuasion, and taught her girls with astonishing
rapidity to do all sorts of housework. In time, the graduates of Felicia's
cooking school came to be prized by housekeepers all over the city. But that is
anticipating our story. The history of the Settlement has never yet been
written. When it is Felicia's part will be found of very great importance.
The depth of winter found Chicago presenting, as every great city of the world
presents to the eyes of Christendom the marked contrast between riches and
poverty, between culture, refinement, luxury, ease, and ignorance, depravity,
destitution and the bitter struggle for bread. It was a hard winter but a gay
winter. Never had there been such a succession of parties, receptions, balls,
dinners, banquets, fetes, gayeties. Never had the opera and the theatre been so
crowded with fashionable audiences. Never had there been such a lavish display
of jewels and fine dresses and equipages. And on the other hand, never had the
deep want and suffering been so cruel, so sharp, so murderous. Never had the
winds blown so chilling over the lake and through the thin shells of tenements
in the neighborhood of the Settlement. Never had the pressure for food and fuel
and clothes been so urgently thrust up against the people of the city in their
most importunate and ghastly form. Night after night the Bishop and Dr. Bruce
with their helpers went out and helped save men and women and children from the
torture of physical privation. Vast quantities of food and clothing and large
sums of money were donated by the churches, the charitable societies, the civic
authorities and the benevolent associations. But the personal touch of the
Christian disciple was very hard to secure for personal work. Where was the
discipleship that was obeying the Master's command to go itself to the suffering
and give itself with its gift in order to make the gift of value in time to
come? The Bishop found his heart sing within him as he faced this fact more than
any other. Men would give money who would not think of giving themselves. And
the money they gave did not represent any real sacrifice because they did not
miss it. They gave what was the easiest to give, what hurt them the least. Where
did the sacrifice come in? Was this following Jesus? Was this going with Him all
the way? He had been to members of his own aristocratic, splendidly wealthy
congregations, and was appalled to find how few men and women of that luxurious
class in the churches would really suffer any genuine inconvenience for the sake
of suffering humanity. Is charity the giving of worn-out garments? Is it a
ten-dollar bill given to a paid visitor or secretary of some benevolent
organization in the church? Shall the man never go and give his gift himself?
Shall the woman never deny herself her reception or her party or her musicale,
and go and actually touch, herself, the foul, sinful sore of diseased humanity
as it festers in the great metropolis? Shall charity be conveniently and easily
done through some organization? Is it possible to organize the affections so
that love shall work disagreeable things by proxy?
All this the Bishop asked as he plunged deeper into the sin and sorrow of that
bitter winter. He was bearing his cross with joy. But he burned and fought
within over the shifting of personal love by the many upon the hearts of the
few. And still, silently, powerfully, resistlessly, the Holy Spirit was moving
through the churches, even the aristocratic, wealthy, ease- loving members who
shunned the terrors of the social problem as they would shun a contagious
disease.
This fact was impressed upon the Settlement workers in a startling way one
morning. Perhaps no incident of that winter shows more plainly how much of a
momentum had already grown out of the movement of Nazareth Avenue Church and the
action of Dr. Bruce and the Bishop that followed the pledge to do as Jesus would
do.
Chapter Twenty-nine
THE breakfast hour at the settlement was the one hour in the day when the whole
family found a little breathing space to fellowship together. It was an hour of
relaxation. There was a great deal of good-natured repartee and much real wit
and enjoyable fun at this hour. The Bishop told his best stories. Dr. Bruce was
at his best in anecdote. This company of disciples was healthily humorous in
spite of the atmosphere of sorrow that constantly surrounded them. In fact, the
Bishop often said the faculty of humor was as God-given as any other and in his
own case it was the only safety valve he had for the tremendous pressure put
upon him.
This particular morning he was reading extracts from a morning paper for the
benefit of the others. Suddenly he paused and his face instantly grew stern and
sad. The rest looked up and a hush fell over the table.
"Shot and killed while taking a lump of coal from a car! His family was
freezing and he had had no work for six months. Six children and a wife all
packed into a cabin with three rooms, on the West Side. One child wrapped in
rags in a closet!"
These were headlines that he read slowly. He then went on and read the detailed
account of the shooting and the visit of the reporter to the tenement where the
family lived. He finished, and there was silence around the table. The humor of
the hour was swept out of existence by this bit of human tragedy. The great city
roared about the Settlement. The awful current of human life was flowing in a
great stream past the Settlement House, and those who had work were hurrying to
it in a vast throng. But thousands were going down in the midst of that current,
clutching at last hopes, dying literally in a land of plenty because the boon of
physical toil was denied them.
There were various comments on the part of the residents. One of the new-
comers, a young man preparing for the ministry, said: "Why don't the man
apply to one of the charity organizations for help? Or to the city? It certainly
is not true that even at its worst this city full of Christian people would
knowingly allow any one to go without food or fuel."
"No, I don't believe it would," replied Dr. Bruce. "But we don't
know the history of this man's case. He may have asked for help so often before
that, finally, in a moment of desperation he determined to help himself. I have
known such cases this winter."
"That is not the terrible fact in this case," said the Bishop.
"The awful thing about it is the fact that the man had not had any work for
six months."
"Why don't such people go out into the country?" asked the divinity
student.
Some one at the table who had made a special study of the opportunities for work
in the country answered the question. According to the investigator the places
that were possible for work in the country were exceedingly few for steady
employment, and in almost every case they were offered only to men without
families. Suppose a man's wife or children were ill. How would he move or get
into the country? How could he pay even the meager sum necessary to move his few
goods? There were a thousand reasons probably why this particular man did not go
elsewhere.
"Meanwhile there are the wife and children," said Mrs. Bruce.
"How awful! Where is the place, did you say?"
"Why, it is only three blocks from here. This is the 'Penrose district.' I
believe Penrose himself owns half of the houses in that block. They are among
the worst houses in this part of the city. And Penrose is a church member."
"Yes, he belongs to the Nazareth Avenue Church," replied Dr. Bruce in
a low voice.
The Bishop rose from the table the very figure of divine wrath. He had opened
his lips to say what seldom came from him in the way of denunciation, when the
bell rang and one of the residents went to the door.
"Tell Dr. Bruce and the Bishop I want to see them. Penrose is the name --
Clarence Penrose. Dr. Bruce knows me."
The family at the breakfast table heard every word. The Bishop exchanged a
significant look with Dr. Bruce and the two men instantly left the table and
went out into the hall.
"Come in here, Penrose," said Dr. Bruce, and they ushered the visitor
into the reception room, closed the door and were alone.
Clarence Penrose was one of the most elegant looking men in Chicago. He came
from an aristocratic family of great wealth and social distinction. He was
exceedingly wealthy and had large property holdings in different parts of the
city. He had been a member of Dr. Bruce's church many years. He faced the two
ministers with a look of agitation on his face that showed plainly the mark of
some unusual experience. He was very pale and his lips trembled as he spoke.
When had Clarence Penrose ever before yielded to such a strange emotion?
"This affair of the shooting! You understand? You have read it? The family
lived in one of my houses. It is a terrible event. But that is not the primary
cause of my visit." He stammered and looked anxiously into the faces of the
two men. The Bishop still looked stern. He could not help feeling that this
elegant man of leisure could have done a great deal to alleviate the horrors in
his tenements, possibly have prevented this tragedy if he had sacrificed some of
his personal ease and luxury to better the conditions of the people in his
district.
Penrose turned toward Dr. Bruce. "Doctor!" he exclaimed, and there was
almost a child's terror in his voice. "I came to say that I have had an
experience so unusual that nothing but the supernatural can explain it. You
remember I was one of those who took the pledge to do as Jesus would do. I
thought at the time, poor fool that I was, that I had all along been doing the
Christian thing. I gave liberally out of my abundance to the church and charity.
I never gave myself to cost me any suffering. I have been living in a perfect
hell of contradictions ever since I took that pledge. My little girl, Diana you
remember, also took the pledge with me. She has been asking me a great many
questions lately about the poor people and where they live. I was obliged to
answer her. One of her questions last night touched my sore! 'Do you own any
houses where these poor people live? Are they nice and warm like ours?' You know
how a child will ask questions like these. I went to bed tormented with what I
now know to be the divine arrows of conscience. I could not sleep. I seemed to
see the judgment day. I was placed before the Judge. I was asked to give an
account of my deeds done in the body. 'How many sinful souls had I visited in
prison? What had I done with my stewardship? How about those tenements where
people froze in winter and stifled in summer? Did I give any thought to them
except to receive the rentals from them? Where did my suffering come in? Would
Jesus have done as I had done and was doing? Had I broken my pledge? How had I
used the money and the culture and the social influence I possessed? Had I used
it to bless humanity, to relieve the suffering, to bring joy to the distressed
and hope to the desponding? I had received much. How much had I given?'
"All this came to me in a waking vision as distinctly as I see you two men
and myself now. I was unable to see the end of the vision. I had a confused
picture in my mind of the suffering Christ pointing a condemning finger at me,
and the rest was shut out by mist and darkness. I have not slept for twenty-four
hours. The first thing I saw this morning was the account of the shooting at the
coal yards. I read the account with a feeling of horror I have not been able to
shake off. I am a guilty creature before God."
Penrose paused suddenly. The two men looked at him solemnly. What power of the
Holy Spirit moved the soul of this hitherto self-satisfied, elegant, cultured
man who belonged to the social life that was accustomed to go its way placidly,
unmindful of the great sorrows of a great city and practically ignorant of what
it means to suffer for Jesus' sake? Into that room came a breath such as before
swept over Henry Maxwell's church and through Nazareth avenue. The Bishop laid
his hand on the shoulder of Penrose and said: "My brother, God has been
very near to you. Let us thank Him."
"Yes! yes!" sobbed Penrose. He sat down on a chair and covered his
face. The Bishop prayed. Then Penrose quietly said: "Will you go with me to
that house?"
For answer the two men put on their overcoats and went with him to the home of
the dead man's family.
That was the beginning of a new and strange life for Clarence Penrose. From the
moment he stepped into that wretched hovel of a home and faced for the first
time in his life a despair and suffering such as he had read of but did not know
by personal contact, he dated a new life. It would be another long story to tell
how, in obedience to his pledge he began to do with his tenement property as he
knew Jesus would do. What would Jesus do with tenement property if He owned it
in Chicago or any other great city of the world? Any man who can imagine any
true answers to this question can easily tell what Clarence Penrose began to do.
Now before that winter reached its bitter climax many things occurred in the
city which concerned the lives of all the characters in this history of the
disciples who promised to walk in His steps.
It chanced by one of those coincidences that seem to occur preternaturally that
one afternoon just as Felicia came out of the Settlement with a basket of food
which she was going to leave as a sample with a baker in the Penrose district,
Stephen Clyde opened the door of the carpenter shop in the basement and came out
in time to meet her as she reached the sidewalk.
"Let me carry your basket, please," he said.
"Why do you say 'please'?" asked Felicia, handing over the basket
while they walked along.
"I would like to say something else," replied Stephen, glancing at her
shyly and yet with a boldness that frightened him, for he had been loving
Felicia more every day since he first saw her and especially since she stepped
into the shop that day with the Bishop, and for weeks now they had been thrown
in each other's company.
"What else?" asked Felicia, innocently falling into the trap.
"Why--" said Stephen, turning his fair, noble face full toward her and
eyeing her with the look of one who would have the best of all things in the
universe, "I would like to say: 'Let me carry your basket, dear
Felicia'."
Felicia never looked so beautiful in her life. She walked on a little way
without even turning her face toward him. It was no secret with her own heart
that she had given it to Stephen some time ago. Finally she turned and said
shyly, while her face grew rosy and her eyes tender: "Why don't you say it,
then?"
"May I?" cried Stephen, and he was so careless for a minute of the way
he held the basket, that Felicia exclaimed:
"Yes! But oh, don't drop my goodies!"
"Why, I wouldn't drop anything so precious for all the world, dear
Felicia," said Stephen, who now walked on air for several blocks, and what
was said during that walk is private correspondence that we have no right to
read. Only it is a matter of history that day that the basket never reached its
destination, and that over in the other direction, late in the afternoon, the
Bishop, walking along quietly from the Penrose district, in rather a secluded
spot near the outlying part of the Settlement district, heard a familiar voice
say:
"But tell me, Felicia, when did you begin to love me?"
"I fell in love with a little pine shaving just above your ear that day
when I saw you in the shop!" said the other voice with a laugh so clear, so
pure, so sweet that it did one good to hear it.
"Where are you going with that basket?" he tried to say sternly.
"We are taking it to -- where are we taking it, Felicia?"
"Dear Bishop, we are taking it home to begin--"
"To begin housekeeping with," finished Stephen, coming to the rescue.
"Are you?" said the Bishop. "I hope you will invite me to share.
I know what Felicia's cooking is."
"Bishop, dear Bishop!" said Felicia, and she did not pretend to hide
her happiness; "indeed, you shall be the most honored guest. Are you
glad?"
"Yes, I am," he replied, interpreting Felicia's words as she wished.
Then he paused a moment and said gently: "God bless you both!" and
went his way with a tear in his eye and a prayer in his heart, and left them to
their joy.
Yes. Shall not the same divine power of love that belongs to earth be lived and
sung by the disciples of the Man of Sorrows and the Burden-bearer of sins? Yea,
verily! And this man and woman shall walk hand in hand through this great desert
of human woe in this city, strengthening each other, growing more loving with
the experience of the world's sorrows, walking in His steps even closer yet
because of their love for each other, bringing added blessing to thousands of
wretched creatures because they are to have a home of their own to share with
the homeless. "For this cause," said our Lord Jesus Christ,
"shall a man leave his father and mother and cleave unto his wife."
And Felicia and Stephen, following the Master, love him with a deeper, truer
service and devotion because of the earthly affection which Heaven itself
sanctions with its solemn blessing.
But it was a little after the love story of the Settlement became a part of its
glory that Henry Maxwell of Raymond came to Chicago with Rachel Winslow and
Virginia Page and Rollin and Alexander Powers and President Marsh, and the
occasion was a remarkable gathering at the hall of the Settlement arranged by
the Bishop and Dr. Bruce, who had finally persuaded Mr. Maxwell and his fellow
disciples in Raymond to come on to be present at this meeting.
There were invited into the Settlement Hall, meeting for that night men out of
work, wretched creatures who had lost faith in God and man, anarchists and
infidels, free-thinkers and no-thinkers. The representation of all the city's
worst, most hopeless, most dangerous, depraved elements faced Henry Maxwell and
the other disciples when the meeting began. And still the Holy Spirit moved over
the great, selfish, pleasure-loving, sin-stained city, and it lay in God's hand,
not knowing all that awaited it. Every man and woman at the meeting that night
had seen the Settlement motto over the door blazing through the transparency set
up by the divinity student: "What would Jesus do?"
And Henry Maxwell, as for the first time he stepped under the doorway, was
touched with a deeper emotion than he had felt in a long time as he thought of
the first time that question had come to him in the piteous appeal of the shabby
young man who had appeared in the First Church of Raymond at the morning
service.
Was his great desire for fellowship going to be granted? Would the movement
begun in Raymond actually spread over the country? He had come to Chicago with
his friends partly to see if the answer to that question would be found in the
heart of the great city life. In a few minutes he would face the people. He had
grown very strong and calm since he first spoke with trembling to that company
of workingmen in the railroad shops, but now as then he breathed a deeper prayer
for help. Then he went in, and with the rest of the disciples he experienced one
of the great and important events of the earthly life. Somehow he felt as if
this meeting would indicate something of an answer to his constant query:
"What would Jesus do?" And tonight as he looked into the faces of men
and women who had for years been strangers and enemies to the Church, his heart
cried out: "O, my Master, teach the Church, Thy Church, how to follow Thy
steps better!" Is that prayer of Henry Maxwell's to be answered? Will the
Church in the city respond to the call to follow Him? Will it choose to walk in
His steps of pain and suffering? And still, over all the city broods the Spirit.
Grieve Him not, O city! For He was never more ready to revolutionize this world
than now!
Chapter Thirty
"Now, when Jesus heard these things, He said unto him, Yet lackest thou one
thing: sell all that thou hast, and distribute unto the poor, and thou shalt
have treasure in heaven: and come, follow Me."
WHEN Henry Maxwell began to speak to the souls crowded into the Settlement Hall
that night it is doubtful if he ever faced such an audience in his life. It is
quite certain that the city of Raymond did not contain such a variety of
humanity. Not even the Rectangle at its worst could furnish so many men and
women who had fallen entirely out of the reach of the church and of all
religious and even Christian influences.
What did he talk about? He had already decided that point. He told in the
simplest language he could command some of the results of obedience to the
pledge as it had been taken in Raymond. Every man and woman in that audience
knew something about Jesus Christ. They all had some idea of His character, and
however much they had grown bitter toward the forms of Christian ecclesiasticism
or the social system, they preserved some standard of right and truth, and what
little some of them still retained was taken from the person of the Peasant of
Galilee.
So they were interested in what Maxwell said. "What would Jesus do?"
He began to apply the question to the social problem in general, after finishing
the story of Raymond. The audience was respectfully attentive. It was more than
that. It was genuinely interested. As Mr. Maxwell went on, faces all over the
hall leaned forward in a way seldom seen in church audiences or anywhere except
among workingmen or the people of the street when once they are thoroughly
aroused. "What would Jesus do?" Suppose that were the motto not only
of the churches but of the business men, the politicians, the newspapers, the
workingmen, the society people -- how long would it take under such a standard
of conduct to revolutionize the world? What was the trouble with the world? It
was suffering from selfishness. No one ever lived who had succeeded in
overcoming selfishness like Jesus. If men followed Him regardless of results the
world would at once begin to enjoy a new life.
Maxwell never knew how much it meant to hold the respectful attention of that
hall full of diseased and sinful humanity. The Bishop and Dr. Bruce, sitting
there, looking on, seeing many faces that represented scorn of creeds, hatred of
the social order, desperate narrowness and selfishness, marveled that even so
soon under the influence of the Settlement life, the softening process had begun
already to lessen the bitterness of hearts, many of which had grown bitter from
neglect and indifference.
And still, in spite of the outward show of respect to the speaker, no one, not
even the Bishop, had any true conception of the feeling pent up in that room
that night. Among those who had heard of the meeting and had responded to the
invitation were twenty or thirty men out of work who had strolled past the
Settlement that afternoon, read the notice of the meeting, and had come in out
of curiosity and to escape the chill east wind. It was a bitter night and the
saloons were full. But in that whole district of over thirty thousand souls,
with the exception of the saloons, there was not a door open except the clean,
pure Christian door of the Settlement. Where would a man without a home or
without work or without friends naturally go unless to the saloon?
It had been the custom at the Settlement for a free discussion to follow any
open meeting of this kind, and when Mr. Maxwell finished and sat down, the
Bishop, who presided that night, rose and made the announcement that any man in
the hall was at liberty to ask questions, to speak out his feelings or declare
his convictions, always with the understanding that whoever took part was to
observe the simple rules that governed parliamentary bodies and obey the
three-minute rule which, by common consent, would be enforced on account of the
numbers present.
Instantly a number of voices from men who had been at previous meetings of this
kind exclaimed, "Consent! consent!"
The Bishop sat down, and immediately a man near the middle of the hall rose and
began to speak.
"I want to say that what Mr. Maxwell has said tonight comes pretty close to
me. I knew Jack Manning, the fellow he told about who died at his house. I
worked on the next case to his in a printer's shop in Philadelphia for two
years. Jack was a good fellow. He loaned me five dollars once when I was in a
hole and I never got a chance to pay him back. He moved to New York, owing to a
change in the management of the office that threw him out, and I never saw him
again. When the linotype machines came in I was one of the men to go out, just
as he did. I have been out most of the time since. They say inventions are a
good thing. I don't always see it myself; but I suppose I'm prejudiced. A man
naturally is when he loses a steady job because a machine takes his place. About
this Christianity he tells about, it's all right. But I never expect to see any
such sacrifices on the part of the church people. So far as my observation goes
they're just as selfish and as greedy for money and worldly success as anybody.
I except the Bishop and Dr. Bruce and a few others. But I never found much
difference between men of the world, as they are called, and church members when
it came to business and money making. One class is just as bad as another
there."
Cries of "That's so!" "You're right!" "Of course!"
interrupted the speaker, and the minute he sat down two men who were on the
floor for several seconds before the first speaker was through began to talk at
once.
The Bishop called them to order and indicated which was entitled to the floor.
The man who remained standing began eagerly:
"This is the first time I was ever in here, and may be it'll be the last.
Fact is, I am about at the end of my string. I've tramped this city for work
till I'm sick. I'm in plenty of company. Say! I'd like to ask a question of the
minister, if it's fair. May I?"
"That's for Mr. Maxwell to say," said the Bishop.
"By all means," replied Mr. Maxwell quickly. "Of course, I will
not promise to answer it to the gentleman's satisfaction."
"This is my question." The man leaned forward and stretched out a long
arm with a certain dramatic force that grew naturally enough out of his
condition as a human being. "I want to know what Jesus would do in my case.
I haven't had a stroke of work for two months. I've got a wife and three
children, and I love them as much as if I was worth a million dollars. I've been
living off a little earnings I saved up during the World's Fair jobs I got. I'm
a carpenter by trade, and I've tried every way I know to get a job. You say we
ought to take for our motto, 'What would Jesus do?' What would He do if He was
out of work like me? I can't be somebody else and ask the question. I want to
work. I'd give anything to grow tired of working ten hours a day the way I used
to. Am I to blame because I can't manufacture a job for myself? I've got to
live, and my wife and my children have got to live. But how? What would Jesus
do? You say that's the question we ought to ask."
Mr. Maxwell sat there staring at the great sea of faces all intent on his, and
no answer to this man's question seemed for the time being to be possible.
"O God!" his heart prayed; "this is a question that brings up the
entire social problem in all its perplexing entanglement of human wrongs and its
present condition contrary to every desire of God for a human being's welfare.
Is there any condition more awful than for a man in good health, able and eager
to work, with no means of honest livelihood unless he does work, actually unable
to get anything to do, and driven to one of three things: begging or charity at
the hands of friends or strangers, suicide or starvation? 'What would Jesus
do?'" It was a fair question for the man to ask. It was the only question
he could ask, supposing him to be a disciple of Jesus. But what a question for
any man to be obliged to answer under such conditions?
All this and more did Henry Maxwell ponder. All the others were thinking in the
same way. The Bishop sat there with a look so stern and sad that it was not hard
to tell how the question moved him. Dr. Bruce had his head bowed. The human
problem had never seemed to him so tragical as since he had taken the pledge and
left his church to enter the Settlement. What would Jesus do? It was a terrible
question. And still the man stood there, tall and gaunt and almost terrible,
with his arm stretched out in an appeal which grew every second in meaning. At
length Mr. Maxwell spoke.
"Is there any man in the room, who is a Christian disciple, who has been in
this condition and has tried to do as Jesus would do? If so, such a man can
answer this question better than I can."
There was a moment's hush over the room and then a man near the front of the
hall slowly rose. He was an old man, and the hand he laid on the back of the
bench in front of him trembled as he spoke.
"I think I can safely say that I have many times been in just such a
condition, and I have always tried to be a Christian under all conditions. I
don't know as I have always asked this question, 'What would Jesus do?' when I
have been out of work, but I do know I have tried to be His disciple at all
times. Yes," the man went on, with a sad smile that was more pathetic to
the Bishop and Mr. Maxwell than the younger man's grim despair; "yes, I
have begged, and I have been to charity institutions, and I have done everything
when out of a job except steal and lie in order to get food and fuel. I don't
know as Jesus would have done some of the things I have been obliged to do for a
living, but I know I have never knowingly done wrong when out of work. Sometimes
I think maybe He would have starved sooner than beg. I don't know."
The old man's voice trembled and he looked around the room timidly. A silence
followed, broken by a fierce voice from a large, black-haired, heavily-bearded
man who sat three seats from the Bishop. The minute he spoke nearly every man in
the hall leaned forward eagerly. The man who had asked the question, "What
would Jesus do in my case?" slowly sat down and whispered to the man next
to him: "Who's that?"
"That's Carlsen, the Socialist leader. Now you'll hear something."
"This is all bosh, to my mind," began Carlsen, while his great
bristling beard shook with the deep inward anger of the man. "The whole of
our system is at fault. What we call civilization is rotten to the core. There
is no use trying to hide it or cover it up. We live in an age of trusts and
combines and capitalistic greed that means simply death to thousands of innocent
men, women and children. I thank God, if there is a God --which I very much
doubt-- that I, for one, have never dared to marry and make a home. Home! Talk
of hell! Is there any bigger one than this man and his three children has on his
hands right this minute? And he's only one out of thousands. And yet this city,
and every other big city in this country, has its thousands of professed
Christians who have all the luxuries and comforts, and who go to church Sundays
and sing their hymns about giving all to Jesus and bearing the cross and
following Him all the way and being saved! I don't say that there aren't good
men and women among them, but let the minister who has spoken to us here tonight
go into any one of a dozen aristocratic churches I could name and propose to the
members to take any such pledge as the one he's mentioned here tonight, and see
how quick the people would laugh at him for a fool or a crank or a fanatic. Oh,
no! That's not the remedy. That can't ever amount to anything. We've got to have
a new start in the way of government. The whole thing needs reconstructing. I
don't look for any reform worth anything to come out of the churches. They are
not with the people. They are with the aristocrats, with the men of money. The
trusts and monopolies have their greatest men in the churches. The ministers as
a class are their slaves. What we need is a system that shall start from the
common basis of socialism, founded on the rights of the common people--"
Carlsen had evidently forgotten all about the three-minutes rule and was
launching himself into a regular oration that meant, in his usual surroundings
before his usual audience, an hour at least, when the man just behind him pulled
him down unceremoniously and arose. Carlsen was angry at first and threatened a
little disturbance, but the Bishop reminded him of the rule, and he subsided
with several mutterings in his beard, while the next speaker began with a very
strong eulogy on the value of the single tax as a genuine remedy for all the
social ills. He was followed by a man who made a bitter attack on the churches
and ministers, and declared that the two great obstacles in the way of all true
reform were the courts and the ecclesiastical machines.
When he sat down a man who bore every mark of being a street laborer sprang to
his feet and poured a perfect torrent of abuse against the corporations,
especially the railroads. The minute his time was up a big, brawny fellow, who
said he was a metal worker by trade, claimed the floor and declared that the
remedy for the social wrongs was Trades Unionism. This, he said, would bring on
the millennium for labor more surely than anything else. The next man endeavored
to give some reasons why so many persons were out of employment, and condemned
inventions as works of the devil. He was loudly applauded by the rest.
Finally the Bishop called time on the "free for all," and asked Rachel
to sing.
Rachel Winslow had grown into a very strong, healthful, humble Christian during
that wonderful year in Raymond dating from the Sunday when she first took the
pledge to do as Jesus would do, and her great talent for song had been fully
consecrated to the service of the Master. When she began to sing tonight at this
Settlement meeting, she had never prayed more deeply for results to come from
her voice, the voice which she now regarded as the Master's, to be used for Him.
Certainly her prayer was being answered as she sang. She had chosen the words,
"Hark! The voice of Jesus calling, Follow me, follow me!"
Again Henry Maxwell, sitting there, was reminded of his first night at the
Rectangle in the tent when Rachel sang the people into quiet. The effect was the
same here. What wonderful power a good voice consecrated to the Master's service
always is! Rachel's great natural ability would have made her one of the
foremost opera singers of the age. Surely this audience had never heard such a
melody. How could it? The men who had drifted in from the street sat entranced
by a voice which "back in the world," as the Bishop said, never could
be heard by the common people because the owner of it would charge two or three
dollars for the privilege. The song poured out through the hall as free and glad
as if it were a foretaste of salvation itself. Carlsen, with his great,
black-bearded face uplifted, absorbed the music with the deep love of it
peculiar to his nationality, and a tear ran over his cheek and glistened in his
beard as his face softened and became almost noble in its aspect. The man out of
work who had wanted to know what Jesus would do in his place sat with one grimy
hand on the back of the bench in front of him, with his mouth partly open, his
great tragedy for the moment forgotten. The song, while it lasted, was food and
work and warmth and union with his wife and babies once more. The man who had
spoken so fiercely against the churches and ministers sat with his head erect,
at first with a look of stolid resistance, as if he stubbornly resisted the
introduction into the exercises of anything that was even remotely connected
with the church or its forms of worship. But gradually he yielded to the power
that was swaying the hearts of all the persons in that room, and a look of sad
thoughtfulness crept over his face.
The Bishop said that night while Rachel was singing that if the world of sinful,
diseased, depraved, lost humanity could only have the gospel preached to it by
consecrated prima donnas and professional tenors and altos and bassos, he
believed it would hasten the coming of the Kingdom quicker than any other one
force. "Why, oh why," he cried in his heart as he listened, "has
the world's great treasure of song been so often held far from the poor because
the personal possessor of voice or fingers, capable of stirring divinest melody,
has so often regarded the gift as something with which to make money? Shall
there be no martyrs among the gifted ones of the earth? Shall there be no giving
of this great gift as well as of others?"
And Henry Maxwell, again as before, called up that other audience at the
Rectangle with increasing longing for a larger spread of the new discipleship.
What he had seen and heard at the Settlement burned into him deeper the belief
that the problem of the city would be solved if the Christians in it should once
follow Jesus as He gave commandment. But what of this great mass of humanity,
neglected and sinful, the very kind of humanity the Savior came to save, with
all its mistakes and narrowness, its wretchedness and loss of hope, above all
its unqualified bitterness towards the church? That was what smote him deepest.
Was the church then so far from the Master that the people no longer found Him
in the church? Was it true that the church had lost its power over the very kind
of humanity which in the early ages of Christianity it reached in the greatest
numbers? How much was true in what the Socialist leader said about the
uselessness of looking to the church for reform or redemption, because of the
selfishness and seclusion and aristocracy of its members?
He was more and more impressed with the appalling fact that the comparatively
few men in that hall, now being held quiet for a while by Rachel's voice,
represented thousands of others just like them, to whom a church and a minister
stood for less than a saloon or a beer garden as a source of comfort or
happiness. Ought it to be so? If the church members were all doing as Jesus
would do, could it remain true that armies of men would walk the streets for
jobs and hundreds of them curse the church and thousands of them find in the
saloon their best friend? How far were the Christians responsible for this human
problem that was personally illustrated right in this hall tonight? Was it true
that the great city churches would as a rule refuse to walk in Jesus' steps so
closely as to suffer -- actually suffer -- for His sake?
Henry Maxwell kept asking this question even after Rachel had finished singing
and the meeting had come to an end after a social gathering which was very
informal. He asked it while the little company of residents with the Raymond
visitors were having a devotional service, as the custom in the Settlement was.
He asked it during a conference with the Bishop and Dr. Bruce which lasted until
one o'clock. He asked it as he knelt again before sleeping and poured out his
soul in a petition for spiritual baptism on the church in America such as it had
never known. He asked it the first thing in the morning and all through the day
as he went over the Settlement district and saw the life of the people so far
removed from the Life abundant. Would the church members, would the Christians,
not only in the churches of Chicago, but throughout the country, refuse to walk
in His steps if, in order to do so, they must actually take up a cross and
follow Him? This was the one question that continually demanded answer.
Chapter Thirty-one
HE had planned when he came to the city to return to Raymond and be in his own
pulpit on Sunday. But Friday morning he had received at the Settlement a call
from the pastor of one of the largest churches in Chicago, and had been invited
to fill the pulpit for both morning and evening service.
At first he hesitated, but finally accepted, seeing in it the hand of the
Spirit's guiding power. He would test his own question. He would prove the truth
or falsity of the charge made against the church at the Settlement meeting. How
far would it go in its self-denial for Jesus' sake? How closely would it walk in
His steps? Was the church willing to suffer for its Master?
Saturday night he spent in prayer, nearly the whole night. There had never been
so great a wrestling in his soul, not even during his strongest experiences in
Raymond. He had in fact entered upon another new experience. The definition of
his own discipleship was receiving an added test at this time, and he was being
led into a larger truth of the Lord.
Sunday morning the great church was filled to its utmost. Henry Maxwell, coming
into the pulpit from that all- night vigil, felt the pressure of a great
curiosity on the part of the people. They had heard of the Raymond movement, as
all the churches had, and the recent action of Dr. Bruce had added to the
general interest in the pledge. With this curiosity was something deeper, more
serious. Mr. Maxwell felt that also. And in the knowledge that the Spirit's
presence was his living strength, he brought his message and gave it to that
church that day.
He had never been what would be called a great preacher. He had not the force
nor the quality that makes remarkable preachers. But ever since he had promised
to do as Jesus would do, he had grown in a certain quality of persuasiveness
that had all the essentials of true eloquence. This morning the people felt the
complete sincerity and humility of a man who had gone deep into the heart of a
great truth.
After telling briefly of some results in his own church in Raymond since the
pledge was taken, he went on to ask the question he had been asking since the
Settlement meeting. He had taken for his theme the story of the young man who
came to Jesus asking what he must do to obtain eternal life. Jesus had tested
him. "Sell all that thou hast and give to the poor, and thou shalt have
treasure in heaven; and come follow me." But the young man was not willing
to suffer to that extent. If following Jesus meant suffering in that way, he was
not willing. He would like to follow Jesus, but not if he had to give so much.
"Is it true," continued Henry Maxwell, and his fine, thoughtful face
glowed with a passion of appeal that stirred the people as they had seldom been
stirred, "is it true that the church of today, the church that is called
after Christ's own name, would refuse to follow Him at the expense of suffering,
of physical loss, of temporary gain? The statement was made at a large gathering
in the Settlement last week by a leader of workingmen that it was hopeless to
look to the church for any reform or redemption of society. On what was that
statement based? Plainly on the assumption that the church contains for the most
part men and women who think more 'of their own ease and luxury' than of the
sufferings and needs and sins of humanity. How far is that true? Are the
Christians of America ready to have their discipleship tested? How about the men
who possess large wealth? Are they ready to take that wealth and use it as Jesus
would? How about the men and women of great talent? Are they ready to consecrate
that talent to humanity as Jesus undoubtedly would do?
"Is it not true that the call has come in this age for a new exhibition of
Christian discipleship? You who live in this great sinful city must know that
better than I do. Is it possible you can go your ways careless or thoughtless of
the awful condition of men and women and children who are dying, body and soul,
for need of Christian help? Is it not a matter of concern to you personally that
the saloon kills its thousands more surely than war? Is it not a matter of
personal suffering in some form for you that thousands of able-bodied, willing
men tramp the streets of this city and all cities, crying for work and drifting
into crime and suicide because they cannot find it? Can you say that this is
none of your business? Let each man look after himself? Would it not be true,
think you, that if every Christian in America did as Jesus would do, society
itself, the business world, yes, the very political system under which our
commercial and governmental activity is carried on, would be so changed that
human suffering would be reduced to a minimum?
"What would be the result if all the church members of this city tried to
do as Jesus would do? It is not possible to say in detail what the effect would
be. But it is easy to say, and it is true, that instantly the human problem
would begin to find an adequate answer.
"What is the test of Christian discipleship? Is it not the same as in
Christ's own time? Have our surroundings modified or changed the test? If Jesus
were here today would He not call some of the members of this very church to do
just what He commanded the young man, and ask them to give up their wealth and
literally follow Him? I believe He would do that if He felt certain that any
church member thought more of his possessions than of the Savior. The test would
be the same today as then. I believe Jesus would demand He does demand now -- as
close a following, as much suffering, as great self-denial as when He lived in
person on the earth and said, 'Except a man renounce all that he hath he cannot
be my disciple.' That is, unless he is willing to do it for my sake, he cannot
be my disciple.
"What would be the result if in this city every church member should begin
to do as Jesus would do? It is not easy to go into details of the result. But we
all know that certain things would be impossible that are now practiced by
church members.
"What would Jesus do in the matter of wealth? How would He spend it? What
principle would regulate His use of money? Would He be likely to live in great
luxury and spend ten times as much on personal adornment and entertainment as He
spent to relieve the needs of suffering humanity? How would Jesus be governed in
the making of money? Would He take rentals from saloons and other disreputable
property, or even from tenement property that was so constructed that the
inmates had no such things as a home and no such possibility as privacy or
cleanliness?
"What would Jesus do about the great army of unemployed and desperate who
tramp the streets and curse the church, or are indifferent to it, lost in the
bitter struggle for the bread that tastes bitter when it is earned on account of
the desperate conflict to get it? Would Jesus care nothing for them? Would He go
His way in comparative ease and comfort? Would He say that it was none of His
business? Would He excuse Himself from all responsibility to remove the causes
of such a condition?
"What would Jesus do in the center of a civilization that hurries so fast
after money that the very girls employed in great business houses are not paid
enough to keep soul and body together without fearful temptations so great that
scores of them fall and are swept over the great boiling abyss; where the
demands of trade sacrifice hundreds of lads in a business that ignores all
Christian duties toward them in the way of education and moral training and
personal affection? Would Jesus, if He were here today as a part of our age and
commercial industry, feel nothing, do nothing, say nothing, in the face of these
facts which every business man knows?
"What would Jesus do? Is not that what the disciple ought to do? Is he not
commanded to follow in His steps? How much is the Christianity of the age
suffering for Him? Is it denying itself at the cost of ease, comfort, luxury,
elegance of living? What does the age need more than personal sacrifice? Does
the church do its duty in following Jesus when it gives a little money to
establish missions or relieve extreme cases of want? Is it any sacrifice for a
man who is worth ten million dollars simply to give ten thousand dollars for
some benevolent work? Is he not giving something that cost him practically
nothing so far as any personal suffering goes? Is it true that the Christian
disciples today in most of our churches are living soft, easy, selfish lives,
very far from any sacrifice that can be called sacrifice? What would Jesus do?
"It is the personal element that Christian discipleship needs to emphasize.
'The gift without the giver is bare.' The Christianity that attempts to suffer
by proxy is not the Christianity of Christ. Each individual Christian business
man, citizen, needs to follow in His steps along the path of personal sacrifice
to Him. There is not a different path today from that of Jesus' own times. It is
the same path. The call of this dying century and of the new one soon to be, is
a call for a new discipleship, a new following of Jesus, more like the early,
simple, apostolic Christianity, when the disciples left all and literally
followed the Master. Nothing but a discipleship of this kind can face the
destructive selfishness of the age with any hope of overcoming it. There is a
great quantity of nominal Christianity today. There is need of more of the real
kind. We need revival of the Christianity of Christ. We have, unconsciously,
lazily, selfishly, formally grown into a discipleship that Jesus himself would
not acknowledge. He would say to many of us when we cry, 'Lord, Lord,' 'I never
knew you!' Are we ready to take up the cross? Is it possible for this church to
sing with exact truth,
'Jesus, I my cross have taken,
All to leave and follow Thee?'
If we can sing that truly, then we may claim discipleship. But if our definition
of being a Christian is simply to enjoy the privileges of worship, be generous
at no expense to ourselves, have a good, easy time surrounded by pleasant
friends and by comfortable things, live respectably and at the same time avoid
the world's great stress of sin and trouble because it is too much pain to bear
it -- if this is our definition of Christianity, surely we are a long way from
following the steps of Him who trod the way with groans and tears and sobs of
anguish for a lost humanity; who sweat, as it were, great drops of blood, who
cried out on the upreared cross, 'My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?'
"Are we ready to make and live a new discipleship? Are we ready to
reconsider our definition of a Christian? What is it to be a Christian? It is to
imitate Jesus. It is to do as He would do. It is to walk in His steps."
When Henry Maxwell finished his sermon, he paused and looked at the people with
a look they never forgot and, at the moment, did not understand. Crowded into
that fashionable church that day were hundreds of men and women who had for
years lived the easy, satisfied life of a nominal Christianity. A great silence
fell over the congregation. Through the silence there came to the consciousness
of all the souls there present a knowledge, stranger to them now for years, of a
Divine Power. Every one expected the preacher to call for volunteers who would
do as Jesus would do. But Maxwell had been led by the Spirit to deliver his
message this time and wait for results to come.
He closed the service with a tender prayer that kept the Divine Presence
lingering very near every hearer, and the people slowly rose to go out. Then
followed a scene that would have been impossible if any mere man had been alone
in his striving for results.
Men and women in great numbers crowded around the platform to see Mr. Maxwell
and to bring him the promise of their consecration to the pledge to do as Jesus
would do. It was a voluntary, spontaneous movement that broke upon his soul with
a result he could not measure. But had he not been praying for is very thing? It
was an answer that more than met his desires.
There followed this movement a prayer service that in its impressions repeated
the Raymond experience. In the evening, to Mr. Maxwell's joy, the Endeavor
Society almost to a member came forward, as so many of the church members had
done in the morning, and seriously, solemnly, tenderly, took the pledge to do as
Jesus would do. A deep wave of spiritual baptism broke over the meeting near its
close that was indescribable in its tender, joyful, sympathetic results.
That was a remarkable day in the history of that church, but even more so in the
history of Henry Maxwell. He left the meeting very late. He went to his room at
the Settlement where he was still stopping, and after an hour with the Bishop
and Dr. Bruce, spent in a joyful rehearsal of the wonderful events of the day,
he sat down to think over again by himself all the experience he was having as a
Christian disciple.
He had kneeled to pray, as he always did before going to sleep, and it was while
he was on his knees that he had a waking vision of what might be in the world
when once the new discipleship had made its way into the conscience and
conscientiousness of Christendom. He was fully conscious of being awake, but no
less certainly did it seem to him that he saw certain results with great
distinctiveness, partly as realities of the future, partly great longings that
they might be realities. And this is what Henry Maxwell saw in this waking
vision:
He saw himself, first, going back to the First Church in Raymond, living there
in a simpler, more self-denying fashion than he had yet been willing to live,
because he saw ways in which he could help others who were really dependent on
him for help. He also saw, more dimly, that the time would come when his
position as pastor of the church would cause him to suffer more on account of
growing opposition to his interpretation of Jesus and His conduct. But this was
vaguely outlined. Through it all he heard the words "My grace is sufficient
for thee."
He saw Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page going on with their work of service at
the Rectangle, and reaching out loving hands of helpfulness far beyond the
limits of Raymond. Rachel he saw married to Rollin Page, both fully consecrated
to the Master's use, both following His steps with an eagerness intensified and
purified by their love for each other. And Rachel's voice sang on, in slums and
dark places of despair and sin, and drew lost souls back to God and heaven once
more.
He saw President Marsh of the college using his great learning and his great
influence to purify the city, to ennoble its patriotism, to inspire the young
men and women who loved as well as admired him to lives of Christian service,
always teaching them that education means great responsibility for the weak and
the ignorant.
He saw Alexander Powers meeting with sore trials in his family life, with a
constant sorrow in the estrangement of wife and friends, but still going his way
in all honor, serving in all his strength the Master whom he had obeyed, even
unto the loss of social distinction and wealth.
He saw Milton Wright, the merchant, meeting with great reverses. Thrown upon the
future by a combination of circumstances, with vast business interests involved
in ruin through no fault of his own, but coming out of his reverses with clean
Christian honor, to begin again and work up to a position where he could again
be to hundreds of young men an example of what Jesus would do in business.
He saw Edward Norman, editor of the NEWS, by means of the money given by
Virginia, creating a force in journalism that in time came to be recognized as
one of the real factors of the nation to mold its principles and actually shape
its policy, a daily illustration of the might of a Christian press, and the
first of a series of such papers begun and carried on by other disciples who had
also taken the pledge.
He saw Jasper Chase, who had denied his Master, growing into a cold, cynical,
formal life, writing novels that were social successes, but each one with a
sting in it, the reminder of his denial, the bitter remorse that, do what he
would, no social success could remove.
He saw Rose Sterling, dependent for some years upon her aunt and Felicia,
finally married to a man far older than herself, accepting the burden of a
relation that had no love in it on her part, because of her desire to be the
wife of a rich man and enjoy the physical luxuries that were all of life to her.
Over this life also the vision cast certain dark and awful shadows but they were
not shown in detail.
He saw Felicia and Stephen Clyde happily married, living a beautiful life
together, enthusiastic, joyful in suffering, pouring out their great, strong,
fragrant service into the dull, dark, terrible places of the great city, and
redeeming souls through the personal touch of their home, dedicated to the Human
Homesickness all about them.
He saw Dr. Bruce and the Bishop going on with the Settlement work. He seemed to
see the great blazing motto over the door enlarged, "What would Jesus
do?" and by this motto every one who entered the Settlement walked in the
steps of the Master.
He saw Burns and his companion and a great company of men like them, redeemed
and giving in turn to others, conquering their passions by the divine grace, and
proving by their daily lives the reality of the new birth even in the lowest and
most abandoned.
And now the vision was troubled. It seemed to him that as he kneeled he began to
pray, and the vision was more of a longing for a future than a reality in the
future. The church of Jesus in the city and throughout the country! Would it
follow Jesus? Was the movement begun in Raymond to spend itself in a few
churches like Nazareth Avenue and the one where he had preached today, and then
die away as a local movement, a stirring on the surface but not to extend deep
and far? He felt with agony after the vision again. He thought he saw the church
of Jesus in America open its heart to the moving of the Spirit and rise to the
sacrifice of its ease and self-satisfaction in the name of Jesus. He thought he
saw the motto, "What would Jesus do?" inscribed over every church
door, and written on every church member's heart.
The vision vanished. It came back clearer than before, and he saw the Endeavor
Societies all over the world carrying in their great processions at some mighty
convention a banner on which was written, "What would Jesus do?" And
he thought in the faces of the young men and women he saw future joy of
suffering, loss, self-denial, martyrdom. And when this part of the vision slowly
faded, he saw the figure of the Son of God beckoning to him and to all the other
actors in his life history. An Angel Choir somewhere was singing. There was a
sound as of many voices and a shout as of a great victory. And the figure of
Jesus grew more and more splendid. He stood at the end of a long flight of
steps. "Yes! Yes! O my Master, has not the time come for this dawn of the
millennium of Christian history? Oh, break upon the Christendom of this age with
the light and the truth! Help us to follow Thee all the way!"
He rose at last with the awe of one who has looked at heavenly things. He felt
the human forces and the human sins of the world as never before. And with a
hope that walks hand in hand with faith and love Henry Maxwell, disciple of
Jesus, laid him down to sleep and dreamed of the regeneration of Christendom,
and saw in his dream a church of Jesus without spot or wrinkle or any such
thing, following him all the way, walking obediently in His steps.
.
THE END
Readers are permitted and encouraged to copy and freely share this article with others.